iiiii: feii p^ l,< . ^<^^ "^ .V f^. - #^ ^iTt .#^v N. <:^''^-^^ A^ --^ >\^ s^ ■V, .-^^ <0' 0> s :% %■ .<^^ ^^^' .. % ;^ ,->'" c?' o 0^ -^A V^ .0 0^ ^^. ' ... ^ ,0- ^/^ <^ s > \\^ r^ N c .#^\ vOo. Digitized by tine Internet Archive in 2010 with funding from The Library of Congress http://www.archive.org/details/warofgreekindepeOOphil THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE 1821 TO 1833 W. ALISON PHILLIPS liATE SCHOLAR OP MEETON COLLEGE AND SENIOR SCHOLAR OF ST. JOHN'S COLLEGE, OXFORD WITH MAP NEW YORK CHAKLES SCRIBNEE'S SONS 1897 NOV 6 1897 ) -^^W^ter ^ 0.,f£^' Copyright, 1897, bt CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS 9^ TROW DIRECTORY PRINTING AND BOOKBINDING COMPANY NEW YORK PEEFACE This little book makes no pretence to be the result of original research, nor does it aspire to compete with the more elaborate works which have already ap- peared on the same subject. In offering it to the public, my aim has been to make more generally accessible a chapter of modern history which recent events have invested with a new interest ; and I am not without hope that the following pages may be of some use in helping those, who have no time or opportunity for an extended study of the Greek question, to form a clearer judgment upon the mat- ters at issue. For the materials on which this volume is based I am mainly indebted to Mendelssohn-Bartholdy's * Geschichte Griechenlands,' &c. (vols. xv. and xx. of C. Biedermann's * Staatengeschichte der neuesten Zeit '), Finlay's ' History of the Greek Revolution ' (2 vols. 1861), Gordon's * History of the Greek Revolution' (2 vols. 1832), and Prokesch-Osten's * Geschichte des Abfalls der Griechen vom Ttirk- ischen Reich.' Baron von Prokesch-Osten's work is interesting as an elaborate and able apology for Prince Mettemich's Eastern policy. It is especially VI PREFACE valuable for its detailed account of the diplomatic developments of the Eastern Question during the ten years of the War of Independence ; and, of its six volumes, four are devoted to the publication of the full texts of the treaties, protocols, and diplomatic correspondence on which the work is based. The more important of the treaties and protocols will also be found in full in Professor Holland's 'The European Concert and the Eastern Question.' Of the other books which I have used, I will only refer here to M. Alfred Lemaitre's 'Musulmans et Chretiens: Notes sur la Guerre de I'lndependance Grecque ' (Paris, 1895), from which I have occasion- ally quoted. This little book was issued by its author as a counterblast to the Armenian agitation, and is in- tended as an apology for the Turk, and an indictment of the Oriental Christian. M. Lemaitre, however, damages a strong case by his extreme partisanship. The facts he gives are true enough ; but he carefully omits all those that would tell against his case. This is perhaps only repaying the more fanatical Philhellenes in their own coin ; but it is a method of controversy for which it is impossible to feel much sympathy. My hope is that, whatever fault may be justly found with the following pages, the charge of par- tisanship at least may not be proved against their author. W. Alison Phillips. September 1897. OONTEl^TS CHAPTEE I Continuity of the Hellenic race — Effect of the Ottoman con- quest — Function of the Orthodox Church in preserving Greek nationality — The Patriarch of Constantinople — Condition of the Greeks under the Ottoman rule — Com- parative prosperity of the peasants — The Armatoli and Klephts — Sea power of the Greeks — The naval islands — Treaty of Kainardji — Local liberties preserved by the Turks — The Phanariots — The literary movement — Re- vival of antique letters — Influence of Korais., .Page 1 CHAPTER II The preparation — Hope of Russian support — Catherine II. — The Hetairia Philike — Count John Capodistrias offered the leadership of the Greeks — His refusal — Prince Alex- ander Hypsilanti chosen — Ali Pasha of Janina — His origin — He conquers Tepeleni — His cruelties — He aims at creating an Albanian kingdom — His fall Page 19 CHAPTER III The rising in the Principalities — Prince Alexander Hyp- silanti crosses the Pruth — Cold reception by the Rou- vii Vlll CONTENTS manian peasants — Massacres at Galatz and Yassy — In- cax3acity of Hypsilanti — He marches to Bucharest — Heterogeneous constitution of the insurgent force — The Patriarch of Constantinople anathematises the revolt — It is denounced by the Czar — Treachery of Savas — Murder of Vladimiresco — Battle of Dragashan — Col- lapse of the revolt — Death of Georgaki — Last stand of the Greeks at Skuleni Page 30 CHAPTER IV The rising in the Morea — Neglect of precautions by the Mussulmans — Activity of Greek agitators — Pappa Phlesas — Archbishop Germanos — The beginning of hos- tilities — A w^ar of extermination — Leaders of the revolt — Kolokotrones — Petrobey Mavromichales — First suc- cesses and cruelties of the Greeks — Siege of Monem- vasia — ^Arrival of Prince Demetrius Hypsilanti — Greek atrocities at Monemvasia, Vrachori, and Navarino — • Siege and massacre of Tripolitza — Eevolt of the islands — Greek successes and atrocities at sea — Admiral Mia- oulis — First employment of fireships by the Greeks — Destruction of Galaxidi by the Turks Page 44 CHAPTER Y Turkish reprisals — Execution of the Patriarch of Constan- tinople — Eifect of the news on European opinion — Pro- test of Eussia — Suppression of the revolt to the north of Thermopylae — Anarchy in Greece — Attempts to form Governments — First Congress of Argos — The Constitu- tion of Epidaurus — Mavrocordatos elected President. Page 75 CONTENTS IX CHAPTEE VI Death of Elias Mavromichales — Odysseus of Ithaka — His treachery before Karystos — The massacre of Chios — The vengeance of Ivanaris — Mahmoud's plan for the recon- quest of Greece — Odysseus in East Hellas — Fall of the Acropolis — Massacre of the Turks — Invasion of Dramali — The Turks at Argos — Defeat of Dramali in the pass of Devernaki, and at Agionori — Destruction of the Turkish army — Expedition of Mavrocordatos for the relief of the Suliots — Defeat of Peta — Advance of Omer Vrioni in West Hellas — First siege of Missolonghi Page 88 CHAPTER VII Attitude of the Powers — Policy of Canning — Russo-Turk- ish war postponed — Threatened break-up of the Holy Alliance — Dissensions among the Greeks — Odysseus in East Hellas — Kolokotrones — Second National Assembly at Astros — Feud between the civil and military elements — Petrobey elected President — Kolokotrones defies the Assembly — Campaign of Yussuf Pasha in East Hellas — Cruise of Khosrew Pasha — Invasion of Western Hellas by Mustai Pasha — Exploit of Marko Botzares at Kar- penisi — Successful defence of Anatoliko — Renewal of civil strife — Government flies to Kranidi — First Civil War — Submission of Kolokotrones Page 113 CHAPTER VIII Arrival of Lord Byron in Greece — Effect on European opinion — The first Greek loans — Byron's opinion of the Greeks — He goes to Missolonghi — His death — Presidency CONTENTS of Konduriottes — Eenewed dissensions — The second Civil War — Complete victory of the Government^ — Im- prisonment of Kolokotrones Page 135 CHAPTER IX Sultan Mahmoud appeals to Mehemet Ali of Eg'ypt for aid — Insurrection in Crete — Hussein Bey pacifies Crete — Preparations of Mehemet Ali for the invasion of the Morea — Destruction of Kasos — ^Ibrahim sails to Rhodes — He celebrates the feast of Bairam in the Bay of Makry — Destruction of Psara by Khosrew^ Pasha — Turkish at- tack on Samos repulsed — Naval engagements of Bud- run — Victory of Miaoulis off Crete — Mutinous conduct of the Hydriot seamen — Ibrahim reaches Suda. .Page 151 CHAPTER X Ibrahim lands in the Morea — Neglect of the Greeks — ^Defeat of the Greeks at Krommydi — Siege of Navarino — Hus- sein Bey captures Sphakteria — Surrender of Pylos and Navarino — Kolokotrones released and made commander- in-chief — Heroic stand of Dikaios at Maniaki — Ibrahim advances on Tripolitza — His check at the Mills of Lerna — He devastates the Morea — Desperate condition of the Greeks Page 170 CHAPTER XI Eeshid * Kiutayeh ' invades West Hellas— He opens the siege of Missolonghi — State of the defences — Arrival of Khosrew with the Ottoman fleet — Turkish assaults re- pulsed — Desperate straits of the garrison — Greek fleet under Miaoulis defeats Khosrevc^, and relieves the tow^n CONTENTS Xi — Critical position of Reshid — Ibrahim arrives before Missolonghi — Miaoulis ag-ain relieves the town — Assault of Arab guards repulsed — Fall of Fort Vasiladi — Capitu- lation of Anatoliko — Repulse of Turks and Arabs from the islet of Klissova — Attempt of Miaoulis to revictual the town defeated — Sortie of the garrison — Sack of the town, and massacre of the inhabitants — Effect on Europe Page 182 CHAPTER XII Reshid reduces West Hellas — He advances into Attica — Rule of Gouras at Athens — Capture of Athens by the Turks — Siege of the Acroj)olis — Karaiskakis appointed commander-in-chief in East Hellas — His character — De- feat at Chaidari — Death of Gouras — Victories of Karais- kakis at Arachova and Distomo — General Gordon at Munj^chia — ^Attack of Reshid repulsed — Arrival of Church and Cochrane — Siege and surrender of the mon- astery of St. Spiridion — Massacre of the defenders — Death of Karaiskakis — Defeat of the Greeks before Athens — Fall of the Acropolis Page 204 CHAPTER XIII Fall of the Government of Konduriottes — Zaimis elected President — Renewal of party strife — League of Koloko- trones and Konduriottes against Zaimis — Sissinis elected as a rival President — Rival assemblies at Damala and iEgina — Arrival of Lord Cochrane and Sir Richard Church — They reconcile the factions — ^Assembly at Damala — Capodistrias elected President — Constitution of Troezene — Provisional administration formed — Mis- er3' of the country — Tyranny of the Klephts and Arma- xii CONTENTS toll — Piracy in the Mgean — Photomaras and Grivas in Nauplia — Operations of Ibrahim in the Morea — Trea- son of Nenekos — Campaign of Kolokotrones — Successes of the Greeks — ^Ibrahim devastates Messenia. . .Pa^re 223 CHAPTEE XIV Greece and the Powers — Eussian proposals — ^Attitude of Canning' and Metternich — Conferences at St. Petersburg — Changed relations of the Powers — Break up of the Holy Alliance — Attitude of Alexander I. — His death — Crisis in Eussia — Uncertainty of the succession — Mili- tary revolt — Accession of Nicholas — Eussian ultimatum to Turkey — Protocol of St. Petersburg — Military reforms in Turkey — Massacre of the Janissaries — ^Alliance of Eussia, France, and England — Treaty of London. Page 237 CHAPTER XV 111 success of the Greeks at sea — Junction of the Egyptian and Turkish fleets at Navarino — Abortive expedition of Cochrane to Alexandria — Increase of piracy — Victory of Cochrane off Cape Papas — Intervention of the allied Ad- mirals — Armistice accepted by the Greeks and rejected by the Turks — Codrington at Navarino — Convention with Ibrahim — Eenewed activity of the Greeks — Captain Hastings in the Gulf of Corinth — Destruction of a Turk- ish flotilla at Salona — Ibrahim sails from Navarino — ^Ac- tion of Codrington — The allied fleets enter the Bay of Navarino — The battle of Navarino Page 251 CHAPTER XVI The consequences of the battle of Navarino — The allied fleets retire to refit — Ibrahim remains firm — Efl'ect of CONTENTS Xlli the battle on the Powers — Russia proposes a joint ul- timatum to the Porte — Weak and vacillating policy of England — Lord Dudley's note to the Porte — Policy of Wellington — Effect of the battle at Constantinople — The Porte demands compensation — Withdrawal of the ambassadors — The Sultan proclaims a Holy War — Treaty of Akkermann declared void — Russia declares war, and occupies the PrinciiJalities Page 2G8 CHAPTER XVII The arrival of Capodistrias in Greece — Enthusiastic recep- tion by the Greeks — Misery of the country — Condition of the Government — Principles of Capodistrias — He aims at establishing a bureaucracy on the Russian model — Military reforms — Piracy in the ^gean — The Powers in- tervene — Destruction of Grabusa by the Anglo-French fleet — Pirates destroyed by Miaoulis at Skopelos and Skiathos — Attempts of Capodistrias to improve the fi- nances — His nepotism Page 281 CHAPTER XVIII The effects of the Russian Campaign on the Concert — Unex- pected vitality of Turkey — The French commissioned by the Concert to drive Ibrahim from the Morea — Cod- rington at Alexandria — He arranges with Mehemet Ali for the evacuation of the Morea — Landing of the French at Modon — Ibrahim evacuates the Peloponnese — The French occupy the fortresses — Protocol of November 16 — Withdrawal of the French army — Capodistrias presses the war — Renewed insurrection in Crete — Greek naval operations — Hypsilanti advances into Attica — Opera- tions in West Hellas Page 297 XIV CONTENTS CHAPTER XIX Joint report of the ambassadors at Poros — The Protocol of March 22 — Indignation of the Greeks — Capodistrias pro- tests against the Protocol — He refuses to cease hostili- ties — Arbitrary rule of the President — Financial support of Europe — A National Assembly summoned — Measures taken by Capodistrias to secure satisfactory elections — Congress opened at Argos — Proceedings of the Congress — Beginnings of organised opposition Page 311 CHAPTER XX Operations in East and West Hellas — Last engagement of the War — End of the Eusso-Turkish War — The Peace of Adrianople — Eeception of the news in Greece — Its eifect on the Powers — Anglo-Austrian entente — Protocol of February 3, 1830 — Leopold of Coburg accepts the crown — Capodistrias rejects the Protocol — Agitation in Greece — Leopold resigns — Concession by the Porte of reforms in Crete — They are rejected by the Cretans — Boundaries of Greece fixed by Protocol of July 1 — Evacuation of Hel- las by the Turks Page 324 CHAPTER XXI Effect on the Greek question of the July Revolution — Grow- ing opposition to the arbitrary rule of Capodistrias — Activity of the press — The * Apollo ' suppressed at Nau- plia — It is transferred to Hydra — ^Hydra becomes the centre of the Opposition — Divisions in the Concert of the Powers — Hydra declares against the President — Miaoulis seizes the Greek fleet at Poros — Intervention of CONTENTS XV the Kussian Admiral — Miaoulis blows up the Hellas — Sack of Poros — Eival assembles summoned at Argos and Hydra Page 343 CHAPTER XXII The approach of the crisis — Position of Petrobey — His dis- content with the Government — Character of the Main- otes — Attempts of Capodistrias to reduce them to order — Imprisonment of the Mavromichales — Rising- in the Maina — Escape of Petrobey — He is recaptured and tried — Admiral Eicord intercedes — Humiliation of Petrobey — Murder of Capodistrias by George and Constantine Mavromichales— Character of Capodistrias Page 3G0 CHAPTER XXIII Provisional Government — Agostino Capodistrias — Congress of Argos — Agostino elected President — Feud between Moreots and Eumeliots — Fighting in Argos — Eumeliots withdraw — Kolettes follows — Opposition Government es- tablished at Megara — Civil War — Kolettes invades the Morea — Impotence of the Government — Intervention of the Powers — Eesignation of Agostino — Kolettes su- preme — Continued anarchy — The French occupy Nauplia — Insurrection of Kolokotrones — Treaty of May 7 — Otho of Bavaria declared King of Greece — Close of the Con- ference at London Page 374 CHAPTER XXIY [)ontinued civil strife — Success of Kolokotrones — Impotence of the Government — Misery of the country — Fight be- tween Armatoli and the French at Argos — Arrival of King Otho — Conclusion Page 393 THE WAR OP GREEK INDEPENDENCE CHAPTER I Continuity of the Hellenic race — Effect of the Ottoman con- quest — Function of the Orthodox Church in preserving Greek nationality — The Patriarch of Constantinople — Condition of the Greeks under the Ottoman rule — Com- parative prosperity of the peasants — The Armatoli and Klephts — Sea powder of the Greeks — The naval islands — Treaty of Kainardji — Local liberties preserved by the Turks — The Phanariots — The literary movement — Ee- vival of antique letters — Influence of Korais Once more the Greek has measured his strength with the Turk, and once more the passionate cry of the Hellenes for the fulfilment of their national aspira- tions has, in spite of the unfriendly attitude of the Governments and of the warnings of experienced statesmen, awakened sympathetic echoes throughout Europe. This Philhellenic enthusiasm is an instinct rather than a deliberate conviction. Europe, educated for centuries in an almost religious reverence for an- 1 2 THE WAE OF GKEEK INDEPENDENCE tique culture, cannot forget tlie debt which she owes to the land which was the birthplace of her sciences and the cradle of her arts. In vain it is pointed out that, after the changes and chances of twenty centuries, the modern Greeks have little in common with the race of Pericles and Plato. In vain has grievous dis- illusion followed the high hopes which greeted the foundation of the Hellenic kingdom. The mountains look on Marathon, And Marathon looks on the sea, and the imagination of Europe is still fired with Byron's dream of a Hellas on whose soil, freed from the blighting rule of the barbarian, the arts and sciences shall once more flourish in their ancient glory. An idle dream, perhaps, which should have no place in serious politics. Yet a wide-spread sentiment, how- ever empty, is not a factor which the statesman can neglect with impunity. Metternich did so, and the whole fabric of his policy, laboriously built up on the most approved lines of Machiavellian state-craft, col- lapsed at the first strong breath of the ^ pathos ' he affected to despise. The question of the historical continuity of the Hel- lenic race is, then, of more than mere academic inter- est, and enters to no slight degree into the domain of THE GREEK RACE 3 practical politics. It played an important, even an ex- aggerated, part in the history of the first Greek revolt, and even now, when the Hellenic cause is more com- monly associated in the public mind with that of the oppressed oriental Christian races in general, it has no small influence upon opinion. What then is the truth? On the one hand it is urged that the conquest and reconquest of Greece, the manifold migrations of the northern nations during the middle ages, must have completely obliterated the pure Hellenic race, and that the so-called Hellenes of to-day are, in fact, a mixed breed of Albanian, Slavonic, and Latin origin, with but a slight tincture of Greek blood. On the other hand it is urged that no nation, if we except the Jews, has ever been so tenacious of its individuality. Conquered again and again, Hellenism, vanquished in arms, ever retaliated by a bloodless victory over its conquerors. Macedonians and Eomans in turn, while placing Greece under their political yoke, themselves submitted to the empire of Hellenic culture; and though, with the decay of the ancient civilisation, this culture gradually faded away, all the evidence tends to prove that the Greeks, more than any other nation of modern Europe, have succeeded in assimilating those numerous foreign elements which must, in the 4 THE WAE OF GEEEK INDEPENDENCE confusion of troubled centuries, have become inter- mingled witb tliem. Tbe capture of Constantinople, in 1453, by Ma- homed the Second would indeed seem to have crushed the last remnant of Greek nationality. Already the barbarian invasions had, for centuries, been gradually driving what survived of Hellenic culture within the walls of the capital. But now the collapse of the last bulwark of the ancient civilisation produced a result far other than had been expected; for it was the dis- persal of the Greek scholars, which followed the fall of Constantinople, that led directly to the great revival of Hellenism which is known to us as the Renaissance : a movement itself destined, in modern times, to react, through their literary leaders, on the Hellenes. For the time indeed, among the Greeks themselves, the last frayed cord that bound them to the classical tradition was snapped. They survived as a people: but the tie which united them was not the memory of their ancient greatness, but that of their common relig- ion, an influence all the stronger and more effective because their conquerors were of an alien faith. In most of the other parts of Europe the barbarian in- vaders had been converted to the faith of the nations they conquered, and had gradually intermingled with the subject populations to produce nationalities of an THE TIE OF RELIGION 5 entirely new type. The Mohammedan conquerors, disdaining to mix with the r ayahs, the subject races, have by their very exclusiveness served to maintain the national characteristics of the Christian peoples they subdued, except, of course, in those instances where they succeeded in imposing their own faith upon the conquered. The tie then which, after 1453, bound together the scattered Greek communities was the organisation of the Orthodox Church. The sultans were indeed glad to employ an instrument of government which they found ready made to their hand, and it was by their au- thority that the Patriarch of Constantinople displaced the Byzantine Caesars as official head of the Greek Christian subjects of the Porte. Himself, by the very exigencies of his position, the mere creature of the Sultan, dependent as he was on the whims and caprices of court favourites, and bound to acquire and maintain his position by lavish bribes, he nevertheless exercised over the Christian subjects of the Porte an immense influence, and was invested by the policy of the sultans with great temporal as well as spiritual powers. As the Patriarch over the whole Greek world, so, in each diocese, the bishop became the embodiment at once of spiritual and temporal authority. To him were brought suits between Christians for settlement; and 6 THE WAR OP GREEK INDEPENDENCE even Mussulmans would occasionally, in disputes with Christians, prefer episcopal arbitration to the dilatory processes of the cadi's court. It was, however, through the lower clergy that the organisation of the Orthodox Church was most intimately bound up with the life of the people; for, as married men, the parish priests shared to the full in the feelings and aspirations of their flocks, from whom, though set apart by the sanc- tity of their office, they were hardly distinguished by culture or attainments. Just then as, in the West, the idea of imperial unity had been preserved, all through the troubled period of the barbarian invasions, by the Church of Kome, so, throughout the Ottoman dominions, the theocratic basis of Greek unity had been deliberately maintained by the policy of the Ottoman conquerors. The crea- tion or toleration of such an imperium in imperio might from the first have seemed of doubtful wisdom. As a matter of fact it worked, from the point of view of the Sultan, well enough, as long as the Patriarch re- inained completely at his mercy. The danger of the system became apparent only when, with the decay of the Ottoman Empire, the Christian subjects of the sul- tans began to look abroad for support, and the Patri- arch of Constantinople could reckon upon the assist- ance of a foreign power. THE OTTOMAN RULE 7 The Greek then became attached to his religion by a double tie of faith and national sentiment. To his religion and to the head of his religion alone does he owe allegiance ; and no element of loyalty has ever entered into his relations to the Sultan, who ruled him, and rules him, by force alone. As soon then as the rigour of the Turkish tyranny relaxed, no obligation lay upon the ' rayah ' to obey a government which could no longer enforce its claims. It is a mistake to suppose that it was the intolerable tyranny of the Turk which forced the Greeks into rebellion. All history and experience indeed prove that a people will bear without murmuring the most crushing burdens; and it is only when the cords have been relaxed, and the load lightened, that the oppressed will feel the energy to turn upon the oppressor. It was the conscientious ef- forts at reform of the government of Louis XYI. which directly produced the French Revolution. It was the lessening pressure of Turkish rule, and the growing prosperity of the Greek population, that ren- dered the Hellenic revolt possible and inevitable.^ The rule of the Ottoman is indeed harmful rather 1 Cf. De Tocqueville, L'Ancien Regime et La Revolution, p. 259: * L'experience apprend que le moment le plus dan- gereux pour un mauvais g-ouvernement est d'ordinaire celui oil il commence a se reformer. . . . Le mal qu'on souffrait patiemment comme inevitable semble insupport- 8 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE for what it leaves undone tlian for what it does; it is intolerable rather for what it implies than for what it is. The Christian subject of the Sultan, even before modern capitulations, was free to exercise his religion, to accumulate wealth, to educate himself as he pleased; he could even rise to high office in Church or State, become Dragoman to the Porte, or governor of a prov- ince. The status of the peasantry under Ottoman rule was, in the eighteenth century, far more tolerable than in most parts of Europe. Serfdom, still almost uni- versal throughout Christendom, had disappeared; and, in many parts of the Turkish dominions, the culti- vators of the soil enjoyed a prosperity unknown to the peasantry of some nations accounted more civilised. It was the capricious and uncertain character of the Ottoman Government, rather than any conscious op- pression, that provoked misery and discontent. The custom of farming the taxes and of taking these in kind, though in theory workable enough, became, in fact, too often an engine of ruinous exactions; for, where the crops could not be cut until the tax-assessor had made his rounds, there were obviously endless openings for bribery and extortion. The evils of this able des qu'on conceit I'idee de s'y soiistraire . . . le mal est devenu moindre, il est vrai, mais la sensibillte est plus Vive.* STATUS OF THE CHRISTIAN RACES 9 system fell indeed on Christian and Moslem alike. Far more intolerable was that pride of religion and of race which gave to the Christian, in relation to his Mohammedan conqueror, the status of a slave, whom any good Mussulman might insult or outrage with im- punity, and who, for the mere right to exist, was com- pelled to pay an annual poll-tax. All men will more readily forgive an injury than a slight; and the most intolerable of all tyrannies is that which expresses it- self, not in isolated acts of violence, but in a consist- ently applied system of contemptuous toleration. In dealing with a conquered people, Machiavelli had said, one must either crush or conciliate. The Turks had done neither. They had made their rule as galling as possible to the pride of the subject race, while they had neither destroyed its organisation nor even, in some cases, deprived it of its weapons. Under the Byzantine Caesars, certain of the wild hillsmen of the Thessalian border country had been enrolled in a sort of irregular militia, called Armatoli, for the de- fence of the passes and the protection of the roads. This system was continued and extended by the sul- tans; and the Greek mountaineers were thus, by the deliberate policy of the Porte, accustomed for genera- tions to the use of arms, and trained in all the arts of mountain warfare. From Armatole to brigand was 10 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPE]!^DENCE but a short step; and when, toward the end of the last century, the sultans began to diminish the numbers of the Christian militia, and to curtail the power of the captains, these became the enemies of the order they were no longer paid to defend; and, from this time, the brigands, or Klephts, grew into social and political importance as a permanent class. ^ Where the govern- ment shows no respect for justice, lawless men are often supported by the lower orders as a means for securing revenge, or for redressing intolerable social evils. There was as yet no organised effort to throw off the Ottoman yoke; but the bolder and more reckless spirits among the peasantry, weary of a galling sub- servience, hurried to the mountains, and turned brig- and. To be a Klepht was, in the popular view, a glory rather than a disgrace; and for whole decades before the war of independence the Klephts were, in the eyes of their countrymen, the defenders of faith and father- land against the Turk; though, to tell the truth, they plundered Christian and Mussulman with a commend- able impartiality. Owning ' no pasha save the naked sword, no vizier save the gun,' they looked down upon the Ottomans and their ' slaves ' with equal contempt. A thousand tales were current of their reckless cour- age, their cruelty, or their generosity; their deeds of 1 Finlay, i. 27. Fyfle, Modern Europe^ i. 246. THE KLEPIITS 11 valour against tlie Turk were sung in countless ballads, and the names of their celebrated leaders repeated from mouth to mouth in awe-struck tones. And indeed, though of schooling they knew nothing beyond their wild war-chaunts, in courage and physical endurance they in no wise fell short of the heroes of antiquity. One thing alone they feared: to fall alive into the hands of the Turks; and their accustomed toast was * KcChMv fioKv^i ' — the welcome bullet which should save them from this fate. Yet, if it should befall them, it was easier to crush their body than their spirit. The following story is characteristic. The chief Katsantonis and his brother George had been betrayed into the hands of their mortal enemy Ali Pasha, and were by him condemned to have their limbs broken piecemeal with heavy hammers. Katsan- tonis was operated on first. Weakened by illness, he was unable to bear the agony, and, when the hammer fell upon his knee, uttered a sigh. George turned to him in surprise. ^ "Wliat, Katsantonis, are you howling like a woman ? ' When his own turn came, he lay without a sound or look of suffering, while both his legs, from the hips to the ankles, were shattered to pieces. The following story is delightfully reminiscent of our own Eobin Hood and Friar Tuck. The Klephts 12 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE of the Pindus had a priest attached to the band, whose cell was a huge hollow oak. When they made a cap- tive they would lead him up to the tree, and the chief would say: ^ Speak, holy oak, which our fathers rever- enced, what shall we do with our prisoner? ' ^ Is he a Christian,' asked the tree, ^ or an unbelieving heathen?' ' Thou knowest, sacred tree, that he is a Christian! ' ' Then let our brother go on his way rejoicing, after receiving the kiss of fraternal peace, and dedicating his purse for the relief of the needs of his poor brethren ! ' If the prisoner was a Mussulman the answer was sim- ply ' Hang the infidel on my holy boughs, and confis- cate al] he has for the use of the true Church and her faithful children.' A religious sanction, then, was not lacking to this patriotic brigandage. The Orthodox Church gladly forgave crimes committed in the cause of faith and fatherland; and the klepht could pray, in all sincerity of heart, to ' Panagia Klephtrina,' the Mother of God, who protects all robbery by sea and land. Such were the Klephts who played so important a part, for good and evil,* in the war of Greek indepen- 1 Gordon, 1. 400, says * the Greeks had cause to repent their early predilection for the Klephts or predatory chiefs, who were almost all . . . infamous for the sordid per- versity of their dispositions.' Certainly the wretched peas- THE GREEK SEA POWER 13 dence. Another and even more potent weapon, forged by the policy of the Porte, and to be used in the same cause, was the maritime power of the Greek islands. Long anterior to the Hellenic revolt many of these islands had, by one means or another, gained a large measure of independence. Some were practically au- tonomous, their subservience to the Sultan being evi- denced only by the obligation to pay a small annual tribute, and to supply a certain number of sailors to the Ottoman navy. The islanders, accustomed from earliest infancy to face the perils and chances of the sea, were magnificent seamen; and, favoured by their political circumstances, they speedily built up a very considerable maritime trade. To the development of this a great impetus was given in 1774 by the treaty of Kainardji, by which Russia obtained certain privi- leges in the navigation of the Bosphorus and the Dardanelles, and a somewhat vague and shadowy right of protection over the Sultan's Christian sub- jects. Greek merchants now began to trade under the Russian flag. Their vessels, hitherto mainly small coasting brigs, increased in size; and their voyages, at first adventured timidly from island to island, began to extend from Cherson to Gibraltar, and even beyond. ants suffered, during" the war, far more from them than from the Turks. 14 THE WAK OF GREEK INBEPENDElSrCE The danger from Algerine pirates necessitated the ships being armed; and the crews were trained to fight as well as to navigate the vessel. Thus, under the eyes of the Ottoman Government, was gradually built up that naval power which, during the war of liberation, was to win such signal successes for the cause of Hellenic freedom. On the mainland, as well as in the islands, the Turks had permitted a considerable measure of local self-government. In the pashalik of the Morea, while the taxes were usually farmed by the beys of the twenty-three provinces into which it was divided, the village communities were allowed to elect their own officers, the Demogeronts, or village elders, who, be- sides collecting the taxes and managing the affairs of their own villages, met in a district assembly, with the representatives of the towns, to elect the Proestoi, whose duty it was to determine what share of the dis- trict taxation each community should bear, and who, in their turn, chose one Greek officer, called Primate, and one Mohammedan, called Ayan, to represent the province, and to take part in the council of the Pasha of the Morea, who resided at Tripolitza. Though of but small service in preserving any liberty for their countrymen, and indeed themselves more often than not the instruments of oppression, the Primates became THE PHANARIOTS 15 a sort of Greek aristocracy, who, at the outbreak of the revolt, formed the natural leaders of the people, and whose financial experience was especially useful dur- ing the first years of the war. Moreover, it was the communal organisation alone which, in the absence of any other order, preserved the Greeks from destruc- tion during the anarchy of the civil wars. Yet another class of Greeks, who played a very important part in the revolt, remains to be mentioned. The Phanariots were so named from the Phanar, or lighthouse, quarter of Constantinople, ^vhere the palace of the Patriarch was situated, which, with its numerous ofiices and law courts, had gathered about it a consider- able Greek colony. From this class were mainly drawn the officials of the Porte, as well as those of the Patriarchate; and, though their general character was by no means high, they had produced, from time to time, men of distinguished ability and genuine devo- tion to the Hellenic cause. To this class belonged those Phanariot leaders in the revolt, like Alexander Mavro- cordatos and Demetrius Hypsilanti, whose European culture and wider experience of affairs served, in some m^easure, as a check upon the frank barbarism of the Greek native chiefs. Before closing this sketch of the Hellenic race under the Ottoman dominion, a few words must be 16 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE added about that remarkable literary movement which produced so profound an effect on the development of modern Greece. In the course of ages, the ancient language of Hellas, the tongue of Plato and Demos- thenes, had become for all practical purposes extinct. It was indeed still the language of the Church and of the learned; but learning itself had become con- fined to barren theological discussions, and, to the modern Greeks, the masterpieces of the ancient litera- ture were quite unknown. For centuries education had been either wholly neglected, or consisted only in such schooling as could be obtained from monks hardly less ignorant than those they taught. To restore to the Hellenes their language and literature became the self-imposed task of several enthusiastic spirits, among whom Adamantios Korais stands pre- eminent. Already indeed numerous schools, in which the classic writers were taught, had been founded in various parts of Hellas and the islands, mainly by the generosity of wealthy Phanariots. But as long as the language of ancient Greece remained, to all intents and purposes, a dead tongue, it was impossible to re- store to the Hellenes the intellectual heritage of their greater past, and to make it a real power among the people. Korais then set himself the deliberate task of reconstructing for his countrymen a literary language THE GEEEK LANGUAGE 17 which should combine, as far as possible, the best ele- ments of both the ancient and modern tongues. He opposed equally those who, despising the idiom in com- mon use, wished to preserve classical Greek as the lan- guage of the learned, and those who desired to raise the vulgar patois to the dignity of a literary language. His plan was to base his language on the common tongue, but to remove from it all foreign accretions, and as far as possible restore all such ancient and pure forms as had not become wholly obsolete. What Luther^s Bible had done for Germany, Korais's edi- tions of the classics, with their prefaces in modem Greek, were to do for Greece. His efforts were crowned with remarkable success. The mixed patois is still the language of common life; but, in the press and the schools, a Greek is used which differs, not in kind, but in degree only, from the tongue of Homer; ^ and the magnificent literary monuments of Greece have thus been preserved as the common property of the whole people. By this revival of the tradition of the dead glories of Hellas a new. motive 1 One of the most essential differences between modem and classical Greek: the pronunciation according to accent instead of quantity, is apparent comparatively early in the Christian era. Nonnus, an Egyptian-Greek poet, in the fourth century a.d., is the first writer to reckon with ac- cent. See Prof. Murray's Ancient Greek Literature, p. 395. 18 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE and a new force were added to the growing national consciousness of the Greeks. To the dream of the restoration of the Greek Empire of the East was added that of the re-birth of the Hellas of antiquity; the Greeks, ceasing to call themselves, as they had done for centuries, Romaioi, or Romans, resumed their ancient name of Hellenes; and the sea captains of Psara and Hydra, while continuing to pay their vows to the Mother of God, began to call their vessels by the names of the pagan heroes of old. CHAPTEE II The preparation — Hope of Russian support — Catherine II. — The Hetairia Philike — Count John Capodistrias offered the leadership of the Greeks — His refusal — Prince Alex- ander Hypsilanti chosen — Ali Pasha of Janina — His origin — He conquers Tepeleni — His cruelties — He aims at creating an Albanian kingdom — His fall With the consciousness of their past greatness and their present unity astir within them, it needed but the impulse and the occasion to make the Greeks rise against the hated rule of their Ottoman masters; and neither the impulse nor the occasion were long lacking. Ever since the Venetians had been finally expelled from the Morea, at the beginning of the eighteenth century, the eyes of the oppressed Greeks had turned eastward to the rising star of Russia. From the Church of the West, divided from their sympathies by the double barrier of the Papal supremacy and the * Procession of the Holy Ghost,' the Greek Christians had met with little save cruelty and persecution. With the grow^th of the power of the Czars, their eyes turned 19 20 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE naturally to an empire united with them by the bonds of the orthodox faith, and which seemed destined to restore in the East the supremacy of the Cross. Cath- erine II., pondering in her mind vast designs of aggres- sion, was nothing loth to encourage the hopes of the Greeks. At war with the Porte, she did not scruple to send a Russian fleet and Russian agents to rouse the Greeks of the Moreaand Archipelago against the Turk, only to abandon them, as soon as the immediate ends of her policy were secured, to the frightful vengeance of their oppressors. Even this terrible object lesson in the methods of Russian state-craft could not destroy the hopes which the Hellenes based on the great Or- thodox Power. The Treaty of Kainardji, indeed, dis- tinctly conceded to the Russians some shadowy pro- tectorate over the Christian subjects of the Porte, a weapon which she was prepared to use or lay aside as suited her policy. Yet, baseless as this trust in Russia's disinterestedness really was, it was this more than any- thing else which gave such tremendous weight to the propaganda of the great secret society which, in the early years of the present century, prepared the way for, and gave the impulse to, the uprising of the Greeks. The ^ Hetairia Philike ' was founded in 1814, at Odessa, by three Greek merchants named Skuphas, 21 Athanasios Tsakaloff, and E. Xanthos. It had for its object the uniting of all the Hellenes in an armed organisation, for the purpose of throwing off tlie Ot- toman yoke and restoring the Greek Empire of the East. Childishly fantastic in its constitution, with its elaborate hierarchy, its masonic ritual, and blood-cur- dling oaths, it was nevertheless inspired by a determi- nation of purpose which scrupled at no methods for the attainment of its ends. Its success was immediate and universal. !N'othing, indeed, displays the inferiority of the despotic methods of Turkey to those of Russia so clearly, as the ease with which a conspiracy so elab- orate and so ill-disguised was developed and spread. In the course of a year or two the society had extended its operations over all the Greek world, drawling its re- cruits from all classes. Heartwhole devotion to tlie cause of Greece was the condition of membership; the most important rule, that which compelled every mem- ber to provide himself with arms and ammunition. The propaganda was extended even beyond the limits of the Hellenic nation; Servians and Roumanians were invited to attach themselves to the cause of the Cross, and restore, under the hegemony of Greece, the su- premacy of the Church in the East. And behind all the agitation loomed the shadow of Russia. It was the assumed support of Russia that formed the guarantee 22 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE of the trmmph of the cause of freedom ; and this at a time when Alexander I. had surrendered himself, heart and soul, to the policy of Metternich and the Holy Alliance, and the whole weight of the Muscovite power was being used, in favour of the forces of reac- tion and despotism, in the attempt to crush out the liberties which the French Revolution had won for the peoples of Western Europe ! This, then, was the situation at the end of the second decade of the nineteenth century: at Laibach, Metternich with cynical satisfaction putting the finish- ing touches to the edifice which his diplomacy had raised — to that Concert of Europe, united upon the basis of the status quOy which was to stamp out any symptoms of ^ Revolution ' wherever found, and make ' sentiment ' in politics henceforward impossible : throughout the length and breadth of the Ottoman Empire a vast ramification of conspiracy, owing but little to the revolutionary forces of the West, but none the less a very magazine of inflammable sentiment, which needed but a spark to explode, and blow into the air with it all that elaborate diplomatic edifice which Metternich had raised with so much skill and labour. For six years the Hetairia had developed and ex- panded without any definite plan or policy. Governed COUNT CAPODISTRIAS 23 by a directorate of a dozen or more self-constituted loaders, it necessarily lacked the clearness of view and unity of purpose wliicli could alone insure success; and it became necessary to seek a reliable leader, who could be placed at the head of the whole enterprise. One man alone seemed, by his position and great repu- tation, to be marked out for the post. Count Capodis- trias,^ a Greek of Corfu, had, after the peace of Tilsit, which surrendered the Island to ISTapoleon, been taken into the service of the Czar Alexander, and had rapidly gained the entire confidence of his master. In 1820 he held, as Foreign Minister of Russia, an immense as- cendency over the Czar's mind. A Greek who had openly expressed his sympathy with Hellenic aspira- tions, and at the same time the trusted minister of the Power from which so much was expected, seemed the most ideal of all possible leaders of the revolt. A depu- tation from the Morea, headed by Xanthos, accord- ingly proceeded to Moscow, and formally offered to Capodistrias, in the name of the Hetairia, the leader- ship of the Greeks. But, however much he might sym- pathise with the objects of the league, Capodistrias was too intimately acquainted with the secret counsels of the Czar to allow him for one moment to place any reliance on Russian help in such a cause, or to barter 1 Capo d'Istria. 24 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE his own splendid position for a career fraught with such perilous chances. The offer was refused with sympathetic regret, and the Greeks advised to exercise their souls in patience. It now became necessary to look round for another leader; and the choice fell on Prince Alexander Ilypsilanti, the scion of an ancient Phanariot family which boasted its descent from the Byzantine Caesars, who was at the same time a general in the Russian service, and reputed to enjoy the special favour of the Czar. Hypsilanti, moved perhaps by a genuine enthu- siasm for the Greek cause, and perhaps ^ill more by wild dreams of ambition, accepted the call, not doubt- ing that he would have the moral, if not the material, support of Eussia. The Greeks were now provided with a leader; and nothing remained but to decide whether the blow for freedom was to be struck in the South, in reliance on Greek power alone, or in the North, in the certain hope of Russian assistance. The opportunity for the rising had already been given by the revolt from the Ottoman allegiance of Ali, Pasha of Janina, whose extraordinary career exercised so di- rect an influence on the fortunes of the Hellenic insur- rection, that it will be necessary to devote a few words to it before proceeding. The story of this remarkable man reads like a lurid ALI PASHA 25 romance of the Middle Ages rather than a chapter in modern history. Born at Tepeleni in Epirus, in the year 1741, of Albanian parents, the boy's surround- ings impressed on him from the first the untamed and savage character of his race. His father had died, whilst he was still an infant, and his mother, Khamko, a woman of extraordinary character, had, on pretext of securing the rights of her children, exchanged the veil for the sword, and, gathering about her a band of fierce warriors, terrorised the surrounding country. At last, betrayed into an ambuscade, she and her daughter had been imprisoned and insulted by the men of Gardiki and Kormovo. Eeleased through the generosity of a Greek merchant, Khamko had, after this, nurtured in the breast of her son a lust for vengeance, none the less fierce that it was content to bide its time; and to re- venge his mother's dishonour became the supreme ob- ject of Ali's life. It was this passion of hate, no less than his devouring ambition and inexhaustible avarice, that caused him to embark on a career which ultimately led him to measure his strength against the Ottoman power, and so compassed his downfall; not, however, before his vengeance had been satisfied and, after thirty years, the wrong suffered by his family atoned for by a holocaust of innocent victims. At the outset a mere cattle stealer and brigand 26 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE chief, Ali took the first step in his upward course by making himself master of his native town of Tepeleni; and the method used was highly charac- teristic of the man, and of the social condition of the country. Dressing up a goat in his cloak and fez, he gagged the animal to prevent its bleating, and laid it under a tree, at a place he had been accustomed to fre- quent. He then despatched a trusty messenger to Tepeleni, who was to act the traitor, and tell his ene- mies that the hated Ali was close at hand, asleep and unsuspecting. The chance was not to be neglected. Seizing their guns they hurried out and, from a safe distance, poured a volley into the sleeping body of the supposed Ali. Having watched with exultation the death quiver of the unhappy goat, they returned to the town, and proceeded to celebrate their prowess with feasting and revelry. In the midst of their merriment, and while they were completely off their guard, Ali, with his trusty followers, suddenly fell upon them, and massacred them all. Thus he became lord of his native place.^ Starting from this beginning, by violence, by fraud, by intrigue, he gradually acquired a dominion which extended from the Adriatic to the ^gean, and 1 Pouqueville, Regeneration de la Grdce, i. 29. ALI PASHA 27 threatened at once the hopes of Greece and the author- ity of the Sultan. Restrained by no motives of relig- ion or humanity, his cruelties revolted even the hard- ened sensibilities of a people accustomed to deeds of blood. But he knew well how to turn to his own advantage the mutual hates of the races under his rule. When the soldiers of his Mussulman regiments refused to massacre in cold blood the Mohammedan Gardikiots, whom he had lured into his power by a promise of am- nesty, he found his Greek mercenaries Avilling enough to become the instruments of his revenge. The drown- ing of eighteen Greek ladies of Janina, accused justly or unjustly of immorality, sent a thrill of horror through the country, and witnessed at once to his cruelty and his hypocrisy ; for he was himself an aban- doned libertine. Yet, in spite of his monstrous crimes, the rule of Ali Pasha was by no means altogether a curse to the country he governed ; for, like many other tyrants, he would suffer no tyranny but his own, and crushed out with impartial cruelty the feudal anarchy of the Albanian chiefs, the lawlessness of the Klephts, and the peculations of the Turkish officials. Recog- nising too, though himself a mere savage, the value of learning as an instrument of government, his court at Janina became the centre of whatever culture existed in the north of Greece; and under his patronage Mo- 28 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE hammedan poets composed Greek odes in celebration of his unspeakable cruelties ! ^ The ambitious views of Ali were notorious, and the Hetairists had from the first reckoned upon the Pasha of Janina as a possible ally against the Porte. 'Nor did he scruple to enter into relations with the Hellenic leaders.^ It had indeed been his policy throughout to conciliate and betray every interest in turn; and it was, in the end, to the advantage of the Greek cause that Ali was in no sense its protector. Be- fore the outbreak of the Hellenic revolt, an attempt of Ali to compass the murder of his enemy Pacho Bey, chamberlain to the Sultan, at last moved the Porte, long since alarmed at the growth of his power, to effect his overthrow. Ali embarked on the struggle without mis- giving; but he was soon to learn the hollowness of that Machiavellian maxim which he had adopted as his own * That it is better for a prince to be feared than loved; ' for, at the first opportunity, his own sons deserted him, 1 Relig-ious intolerance could not be reckoned among- his faults. When he wished to conciliate the Greeks, he would hold out hopes of his conversion, and drink to the health of the Mother of God! 2 The Greek Paparig-opulos went to Russia, shortly be- fore All's breach with the Porte, as the representative at once of the Pasha and of the Hetairia, to try and induce the Czar's Government to declare war against Turkey. See Mendelssohn, i. 122. ALI PASHA 29 his generals went over with their armies to the Turks, and the wild tribes, whom he had governed by terror alone, threw off the hated allegiance. Ali found him- self shut up with some four thousand men, in the for- tress of Janina; and, besieged by the whole forces of the Ottoman empire, his fall was only a question of months. There can be no doubt that the triumph of Ali would have been fatal to the Greek cause, and, in place of a Hellenic, an Albanian kingdom have been its result. As it was, the service which the Pasha of Janina rendered to the Greeks was, firstly, in distract- ing the attention of the Porte from the plots of the Iletairists, and secondly, in keeping, during the first months of the rebellion, the main body of the Otto- man troops, under their most able general, Khurshid Pasha, locked up before Janina. CHAPTEE III The rising" in the Principalities — Prince Alexander Hyp- silanti crosses the Pruth — Cold reception by the Rou- manian peasants — Massacres at Galatz and Yassy — In- capacity of Hypsilanti — He marches to Bucharest — Heterogeneous constitution of the insurgent force — The Patriarch of Constantinople anathematises the revolt — It is denounced by the Czar — Treachery of Savas — Murder of Vladimiresco — Battle of Dragashan — Col- lapse of the revolt — Death of Georgaki — Last stand of the Greeks at Skuleni If the revolt was not to be indefinitely postponed, tlie war between Ali Paslia and the Sultan presented too favourable an opportunity to be neglected. On the 6th of March, then. Prince Alexander Hypsilanti, accom- panied by a few Greek and Russian officers, began the rising by crossing the Pruth from Russia into Mol- davia. From the first the enterprise was hampered by the vanity, incapacity, and weakness of its leader, by his over-confidence and complete misunderstand- ing of the conditions of the struggle. Secure in the fancied support of Russia, and in the assumed sym- 30 ALEXANDER HYPSILANTI IN ROUMANIA 31 pathy of the Roumanian people, he believed he had but to show himself in the Principalities to be at once welcomed as a deliverer, and carried in triumphal pro- cession to the throne of the East. In high sounding proclamations, addressed to the Moldavians and the Greeks, he announced himself as the champion of the Cross and herald of the dawn of freedom, and, lastly, and most important of all, declared that his enterprise had the support of a Great Power ^ To the Roumanian peasants, however, the appear- ance of a band of Phanariot Greeks in the disguise of deliverers seemed but a mockery and a snare. The Greeks had hitherto only been known to them through their own Hospodar and other subordinate agents of extortion, under whose rule their lot was far more wretched than that of the peasantry under the imme- diate government of the Sultan. ISTor was the name of Russia a grateful sound to a people who, during the Aluscovite occupation of the Principalities from 1808 to 1812, had been reduced to the last stages of misery by the extortion of the invaders, and had seen their homes and fields devastated by the cruel policy of the Czar. Had Hypsilanti appeared as the champion of the Roumanian people against the tyranny of the Hos- podar and the boyards (as the great landowners were 1 Prokesch. i. 30 and iii. 54, &c. 32 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE called), lie miglit have received a different welcome; and even a Roumanian national rising against foreign tyranny miglit have had some prospect of success. But the Hospodar was his active ally, having made over to him all the fiscal and military machinery of the prov- ince, and with him he could not afford to quarrel; and a Greek rising on Roumanian soil was from the first doomed to failure. To the mass of the people he ap- peared merely as the leader of a band of mercenaries, plotting to transfer the sovereignty of the Principali- ties from the Sultan to the Czar; and they received his advances with a sullen indifference which, as his diffi- culties increased, was changed into active hostility. The history of Hypsilanti's enterprise is a record of incredible folly, of sordid intrigues, and revolting crimes; the sombre picture being only here and there lighted up by gleams of heroic fortitude or self-devo- tion. On the night before the Prince crossed the bor- der, a deed of blood was perpetrated which was the first of many that cast indelible disgrace on the Greek cause. Galatz is the principal port of Moldavia. Several Ottoman trading-vessels lay at anchor in the harbour, and some Turkish merchants resided in the town, where also a small guard of Turkish troops was maintained, in accordance with the laws of the Otto- man Empire, to act as police to insure the obedience of MASSACRES AT GALATZ AND YASSY 33 the Mussulman inhabitants to the fiscal laws of the Principality. The Christian troops of the Hospodar stationed at Galatz were commanded by a Greek named Kara via; and this man, who had joined the Hetairia, thought the present an excellent opportunity for enriching himself, in the name of patriotism, at the expense of the Turks. He accordingly assembled the Hetairists and his own mercenaries, and, inform- ing them of the revolution that was about to break out, led them to the attack of the Turkish guard. Of these a few, taken by surprise, were slain at once. The rest held out for some time; but their resistance was at last broken, and Karavia then ordered his men to seize and murder all the Turkish merchants in the town, to take possession of the goods in the ware- houses and seize all the vessels in the port. In obedi- ence to these orders, Turks of every rank, merchants, sailors, soldiers, were surprised and massacred in cold blood.^ The bloody example thus set was followed in many places. At Yassy had been left a body of fifty Otto- man troops to act as a guard of honour to the Hospodar. Before Hypsilanti entered the city, Michael Soutzos, the Hospodar, had persuaded the commander to order his men to lay down their arms, under promise that 1 Gordon, i. 100; Finlay, i. 147. 8 34 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE their persons and property should be protected. The Turks, believing the Hetairists to be but the vanguard of a Russian army, obeyed; and Soutzos ordered them to remain in their quarters, and the Turkish merchants to be imprisoned, under the pretext that this measure was necessary to insure their safety. Yet, as soon as the news of the massacre of Galatz reached the capital, both soldiers and merchants were murdered in cold blood, under the eyes of the Hospodar and of Tlypsi- lanti, without either of these princes making the slight- est effort to save their lives. Hypsilanti even set the seal of his approval on the massacres by making Kara- via a general. The weakness and wickedness which made the Greek leader connive at these horrors was not counter- balanced by any skill in forming a plan of campaign, or energy in carrying out what he had planned. Had he advanced on Ibraila, and there concentrated his power, holding from this base the line of the Danube, it is possible that he might have prevented the Turks from entering the Principalities, and forced Eussia to recognise a fait accompli As it was, he preferred to linger at Yassy, playing the prince, conferring titles, and alienating his own supporters and the proud boy- ards by his absurd affectation of royal exclusiveness. Several weeks he wasted in these congenial trivialities. THE INSURGENT ARMY 35 while the Turks, thoroughly alarmed at last, made vigorous preparations for crushing the revolt. At length he marched southward, and, on the 9th of April, fixed his headquarters at Bucharest. The forces of the insurrection were of the most motley description. Hypsilanti himself, though nominally commander-in- chief, had at his personal orders only a band of some two thousand undisciplined ruffians, more skilled in the art of plundering defenceless peasants than in that of war. The so-called ' Sacred Legion,' a regiment of five hundred Greek youths, whose courage was greater than their experience or physical powers, formed a nobler element; and besides these he could also de- pend upon a small but well-trained force of cavalry, under Georgaki of Olympus, the only one of the Greek leaders who displayed courage, skill, and disinterested- ness. The garrison of Bucharest consisted of a thou- sand veteran troops, under the practically independent command of the Greek Savas; and Theodore Yladi- miresco, a Roumanian boyard, who had joined the H'etairists for his own ends, attached himself to Hyp- silanti's fortunes with a force of some two thousand Pandours, or Wallach cavalry. To weld these hetero- geneous elements into an effective force needed a stronger hand than that of Prince Alexander Hypsi- lanti. 36 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Already ominous signs were not lacking. Vladi- miresco, at the outset of the rebellion, issued a mani- festo to his countrymen, calling on them to support him in presenting to the Sultan a list of grievances against the Phanariot misrule! This was hardly re- assuring from the point of view of the Greek leaders; but Ilypsilanti could not afford to quarrel with any of his allies, and Yladimiresco continued to follow him, though their relations were naturally a little strained. At Bucharest, Ilypsilanti pursued the same fatu- ous course as at Yassy. Surrounded by crowds of adventurers and sycophants, he could find no more im- portant business to transact than the engagement of a comedy company, and the fitting up of a theatre; to pay for which princely necessaries he plundered the monastery of Maryeni.^ Of military activity the only signs were the ceaseless depredations of his ruffianly soldiers in the country round, and, in the town, the run- ning to and fro, from morning till night, of a numer- ous staff of gorgeously uniformed officers, apparently intent on business, but in reality doing nothing in par- ticular. The course of this childish comedy, laughable enough had its denouement been less tragic for the actors, was suddenly interrupted by news which should 1 Gordon, i. 106. THE CZAR DENOUNCES THE REVOLT 37 have at once brought it to an end. The Patriarch of Constantinople issued his anathema against the He- tairia, and denounced the curse of the Church on the rebels. Henceforward Hypsilanti became, not the leader of an orthodox crusade, but the head of a band of ambitious and turbulent conspirators. But a still more serious blow was impending. Hypsilanti had himself believed, and had suffered it to be generally understood, that he had the support of Russia in his enterprise; but now there came letters from Laibach in which the Emperor Alexander denounced the re- volt, upbraided the prince for his perfidy in misusing the Czar's name, struck his name from the Russian army list, and called on him at once to lay down his arms.^ The right and reasonable course would have been to obey; for the whole enterprise had been initi- ated and supported on the confident assumption that it had the sanction of the Czar. Deprived of this sanc- tion it was foredoomed to failure; and all that re- mained was, by a speedy submission, to obtain the best possible terms for its deluded supporters. But Hypsi- lanti was too foolish, or too blinded by vanity, to take a just view of the situation; he preferred to continue his course, and to cover its fatuity from the eyes of his 1 Prokesch. iii. 65. The letter is signed by Count Capo- distrias. 88 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE followers, and perhaps from his own, by a fabric of lies. Alexander, he told the assembled leaders, had denounced the revolution publicly in order to preserve the peace of Europe, whilst privately commanding him to persevere, and promising support. The revolution- ary leaders were but half deceived; Savas and Yladi- miresco opened negotiations with the Porte ; and many boyards, protesting their devotion to the Ottoman rule, fled for safety over the Austrian frontier. Hypsilanti now at last took the field at the head of a small and irregular force, lacking artillery, and al- most destitute of ammunition. Instead, however, of marching towards the Danube to cover Bucharest, he crept away northward towards the Austrian frontier. Savas and Yladimiresco, though suspecting some sin- ister design on the part of the prince, still followed him with their troops; but the treachery of Yladimiresco being suspected, Georgaki arrested him in his own camp, and brought him before Hypsilanti, who am- nestied him, and then allowed him to be assassinated. Savas thereupon deserted to the Turks, but, in place of the reward he had counted on receiving, was promptly beheaded. The Hetairists were now in danger of being sur- rounded by three divisions of Ottoman troops advanc- ing from Widin, Giourgevo, and Bucharest. On the 8th BATTLE OF DRAGASIIAN 39 of June there was a skirmish at Tergovisht, and though both sides claimed the victory, Hypsilanti retreated in haste to Rimnik. After remaining here three days,, he decided to attack a body of Turkish cavahy which had advanced from Ivrai'ova, and taken post at the village of Dragashan, about thirty miles from his camp. The force at his disposal numbered four thousand infantry, two thousand five hundred cavalry, and four guns. The Turks were in all eight hundred horsemen ; and the issue of the fight seemed beyond doubt. On June 19, 1821, Prince Mcholas Hypsilanti, at the head of the Sacred Battalion, supported by Karavia with five hundred horse, took up a position opposite Dragashan; while Georgaki sent forward a strong body of Wallach infantry to hold the road to Krai'ova, strengthening them with some cavalry to cut off the Ottoman retreat. As the troops were exhausted after a long and wet march, Georgaki, who was now the senior ofl^icer in command, decided to postpone the attack till the next morning, meanwhile dispatching an orderly to Prince Alexander Hypsilanti, who was with the rearguard some nine miles behind, to bid him hasten forward and secure the glory of the expected victory. He then retired to his quarters. In his absence, how- ever, Karavia, envious of the Olympian's reputation, 40 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE and thinking to snatch an easy victory, persuaded the weak Prince Mcholas Hypsilanti to disregard the orders of his superior officer, and advance at once to the attack. Unsupported, the Sacred Battalion ad- vanced upon the village held by the Ottomans. These at once saw their chance of destroying the enemy piece- meal, and, with wild cries and brandished swords, charged from behind their cover on the advancing in- fantry, breaking their ranks before they had time to form square. The weary and inexperienced boys of the Greek regiment, though they fought and fell with the utmost gallantry, were unable to withstand the fierce onslaught of veteran troops. The butcher Kara- via, brave enough against defenceless men, no sooner saw the infantry show signs of yielding, than he set spurs to his horse and fled with all his men, spreading panic among the troops in the rear. Georgaki, hearing the firing, hurried up, but was unable to do more than save the standard and a poor remnant of the Sacred Battalion. The day, and with it the last hope of the Greeks, was lost. Hypsilanti, with a scared remnant of his followers, escaped to Rimnik, where he spent some days in negoti- ating with the Austrian authorities for permission to cross the frontier. In terror lest his confederates should buy their own safety by surrendering him to the Turk, FLIGHT OF HYPSILANTI 41 he invented a last lie to secure his retreat. Pretending that Austria had just declared war on Turkey, he caused a Te Deum to be sung in the church of Kosia to celebrate the event; and, on pretext of arranging co-operative measures with the Austrian Commander- in-Chief, crossed the frontier.^ His fate could hardly have been worse had he fallen into the hands of the Turks; for Austria, under the rule of Metternich, had little sympathy with leaders of revolts. For upwards of seven years Hypsilanti was kept in close confinement; and when, at the instance of the Czar Nicholas, he was at last released, it was only to die shortly afterwards of a broken heart. The fate of the remaining leaders is better worth, following, and throws a halo of glory over the end of an enterprise which had begun in such pitiful dis- grace. Georgaki, who was joined by the Albanian chief Pharmaki and some two hundred and fifty men, made a bold attempt to fight his way through to the frontier of Russia. Their fate was accelerated by the hostility of the justly enraged peasantry. Hemmed in by the Ottoman forces, their whereabouts was al- ways betrayed to the enemy, while they themselves could obtain neither guides nor information. At last they found themselves surrounded in the monastery of 1 Pouqueville, Regen&ation de la Gr^ce, ii. 489. 42 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Seko. Georgaki, determined not to fall alive into tlie hands of the Turks, held the campanile of the church until it was no longer tenable, then fired his pistol into the store of powder, and perished in the explosion. Pharmaki defended the main buildings of the mon- astery for a fortnight longer, and at last, deceived by the promises of the Turks, surrendered on condition of amnesty and the honours of war. Thirty-three of his men, distrusting their enemies, escaped the night be- fore the capitulation was carried out. The rest, about twenty in number, were shot in cold blood. Pharmaki himself was taken to Constantinople, tortured, and be- headed. In Moldavia, meanwhile, the insurrection had been suppressed without difficulty. As soon as it was cer- tain that no Kussian aid was to be expected, the boyards deposed Michael Soutzos, who fled to Eussia.^ A Greek named Pentedekas, however, collected some troops, and, in defiance of the boyards, seized the Government. His rule was not of long duration. Prince George Cantacuzenos, his lieutenant, had sta- tioned himself with the Greek troops near the Eussian frontier; and when the Turks entered Yassy, on the^ 25th of June, he crossed the Pruth. His officers and 1 He went, later on, to Paris, where he acted as Greek Minister during the presidency of Count Capodistrias. AFFAIR AT SKULENI 43 soldiers, however, pleading their military honour, re- fused to retire without fighting; and, entrenching themselves as best they could at Skuleni, they awaited the onset of the Turks. The result could not be doubt- ful. Advancing with enormous superiority of num- bers, the Turks first bombarded and then stormed the camp, losing, however, in the engagement a thousand men. Of the Greeks some few survivors escaped by swimming the Pruth. This gallant affair of Skuleni terminated the Hellenic rising in the I^orth, with the collapse of which ended also all idea of restoring the Greek Empire of the East. CHAPTER IV The rising" in the Morea — Neglect of precautions by the Mussulmans — Activity of Greek agitators — Pappa Phlesas — Archbishop Germanos — The beginning of hos- tilities — A war of extermination — Leaders of the revolt — Kolokotrones — Petrobey Mavromichales — First suc- cesses and cruelties of the Greeks — Siege of Monem- vasia — Arrival of Prince Demetrius Hypsilanti — Greek atrocities at Monemvasia, Vrachori, and Navarino — , Siege and massacre of Tripolitza — Revolt of the islands — Greek successes and atrocities at sea — Admiral Mia- oulis — First employment of fireships by the Greeks — ■ Destruction of Galaxidi by the Turks The attempt of Hypsilanti in the Principalities had never met with the united support of the Hetairists. To the directors of the conspiracy it had seemed mora promising to raise the standard of Hellenic freedom upon Greek soil ; and the movement in the north was not allowed to interfere with the preparations for the revolt in the Morea. Here, indeed, where the Mo- hammedans, sparsely scattered in agricultural settle- ments, formed but a small proportion of the popula- tion, a feeling of unrest and foreboding had for some 44 AGITATION IN THE MOREA 45 time been abroad, and among the superstitious popu- lation this had been intensified, in the autumn of 1820, by a terrific earthquake which convulsed the Pelopon- nese. Yet, though the Mussulmans were well aware of the rising which the rayahs had in contemplation, they neglected, with their usual impassiveness, even the most ordinary precautions. The impregnable towers and fortresses, with which the country was stud- ded, would have afforded, had they taken the trouble to arm and provision them, irresistible barriers to the progress of irregular and ill-armed forces. As it was, the storm, when at last it broke, found them ut- terly unprepared, and swept them away in the first outburst of its fury, before they had time to concert measures of resistance. The supineness of the Ottomans was paralleled by the unpractical character of the Greek preparations; for of a consistent and well-pondered scheme there was no question. Emissaries of the Hetairia, so-called apostles — too often unscrupulous agitators who embezzled the money subscribed for the cause — travelled about the country, everywhere inflaming the passions of the peo- ple against their Turkish masters, and calling on them to take up arms for the cause of religion and liberty. Of these agitators the best known and most influential was the Archimandrite Dikaios, popularly known as 46 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Pappa Plilesas, a priest whose morals were a scandal to tlie clnircli, as his peculations were to the national cause, yet, for all that, a brave man, as he proved by his heroic death on the field of battle. To the violent counsels of Phlesas and his like were opposed the views of a more moderate party, compris- ing the wealthier and official element of the movement. At the head of this stood the Archbishop Germanos of Patras, and it included those of the primates who had as yet committed themselves to the Greek cause. In the autumn of 1820, the directorate of the Hetairia had made an attempt to organise the movement in the Morea, and seven ephorates or district Governments were created under the leadership of Germanos; but the scheme was only partially successful. Moderate counsels, in times of great popular excitement, are apt to produce results opposite to those intended. Lashed to madness by the eloquence of the agitators, the common people suspected the motives of the official leaders of the Hetairia, disregarded their advice, and by acts of violence and cruelty precipitated the crisis which these had been anxious to postpone. The disquieting news from the Morea had deter- mined the Porte to place the province under the com- mand of Khurshid Pasha, an officer of tried honesty and capacity. On his arrival, however, he found the BEGINNING OF THE REVOLT 47 country to all appearance peaceful and settled; and, when the Sultan ordered him to take over from the hands of the incompetent Ismael the task of blockad- ing AH Pasha in Janina, he left the Government, without misgiving, in the hands of the Kaimalcam Salik Aga. His absence, however, was the signal for renewed activity on the part of the conspirators; and, at last, the Turkish governor, alarmed at the increas- ing agitation, issued a proclamation ordering the Chris- tians to surrender their arms, and summoning the bish- ops and primates to Tripolitza. By some the invita- tion was obeyed, though with misgiving; others, and among them the Archbishop Germanos, started on the journey, but made one excuse or another for arresting it half way. The proclamation of the Kaimakam had, indeed, only hastened the crisis it had been intended to avert; and the leaders of the revolt seemed on the brink of a decision, when it was taken out of their hands by the furious impatience of the common people. The War of Greek Independence was, in fact, from the first a people's war, a revolt of peasants and Klephts against an intolerable subjection; and it succeeded I only because of this irresistible popular impulse, and in I spite of the general corruption and incapacity of its so-called leaders. It began, characteristically enough, with isolated acts of violence which could hardly be 48 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE distinguished from brigandage. A Turkish tax-gath- erer and his retinue were fallen upon and murdered. A band of sixty Albanian mercenaries were surprised and butchered by three hundred Greek Klephts. This was in March, 1821 ; and in April the insurrection was general. Everywhere, as though at a preconcerted signal, the peasantry rose, and massacred all the Turks — men, women, and children — on whom they could lay hands. In the Morea shall no Turk be left, Nor in the whole wide world. Thus rang the song which, from mouth to mouth', announced the beginning of a war of extermination. The Mussulman population of the Morea had been reckoned at twenty-five thousand souls. Within three weeks of the outbreak of the revolt, not a Moslem was left, save those who had succeeded in escaping into the towns. Meanwhile the national uprising had found lead- ers. On the 2nd of April Archbishop Germanos raised the standard of the cross, and occupied Kalavryta; and four days later, accompanied by the primates Lon- dos, Zaimis, Sotiri, and Papadiamantopulos, and by a wild rabble of peasantry armed with scythes, clubs, and slings, he marched to Patras. The Turks had been I RISING AT PATRAS 49 warned two days earlier of the occurrences at Kala- vryta, and had occupied the citadel, whence for forty- eight hours they had bombarded the town; while, among the burning ruins, fanatical bands of Christians and Moslems massacred each other without mercy. The arrival of Germanos and the primates was hailed with delight by the Greeks ; and it was hoped that the citadel would now be speedily reduced. AVith an im- posing religious ceremonial a crucifix was erected in the central square of the tow^n, and a proclamation issued in the name of the Greek leaders, containing merely these emphatic words, ^ Peace to the Christians ! Re- spect to the consuls! Death to the Turks. ^ ^ The sole immediate result, however, of the rising at Patras was the destruction of a once flourishing town. The Greeks, a mere undisciplined rabble, commanded by leaders of no experience, and divided by mutual jeal- ousies, could not reduce the citadel ; and when this was relieved, on the 15th of April, by Yussuf Pasha, Ger- manos and his followers were forced to retire into the mountains. Many subsequent attempts were made to reduce Patras, but with no better success; and the place remained in the hands of the Turks till after the retirement of Ibrahim from the Morea in 1828. While the bishops and primates were thus raising 1 Gordon, i. 148. 4 50 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE the banner of revolt in the north of the Peloponnese, the southern districts were flying to arms under leaders of a different stamp. In Messenia Petros Mavromi- chales, generally known as Petrobey, Prince or Bey of the Maina, a wild and mountainous district in the southern spur of Laconia, inhabited by warlike robber tribes who boasted their descent from the ancient Spartans, took the field at the head of his clan.^ Mke- tas, Anagnostaras, and other well-known chiefs of ban- ditti joined the revolt; and, above all, Kolokotrones, a celebrated Klepht of the Morea, who for some time had been an officer in a Greek regiment in English service, crossed over from Zante to share in the libera- tion of his country. His courage, personal strength, and proved skill in the conduct of irregular warfare made Kolokotrones a fitting leader of wild warriors; ^ and on his arrival he was recognised as the chief of the insurrection, a position to which Petrobey's hereditary dignity and patriarchal power, though not his easy- going and somewhat weak nature, would seem to have entitled him. 1 For an account of the Mainotes, see p. 362. 2 Cf . Gordon, i. 222. Kolokotrones had in full measure the vices as well as the virtues of a robber chief. * His military talents as a partisan v^ere unparalleled in Greece; at the same time . . . his sordid avarice, and mean ambi- tion, . . . severely scourged his country.* FIRST GREEK VICTORY 51 The war was, from the beginning, conducted with- out organisation or plan. All the open country was speedily in the hands of the insurgents; the Turks found themselves surrounded in the towns by fierce hordes of peasants and hillsmen; and, as no prepara- tions either of arms or provisions had been made, their reduction was, in most cases, but a question of days. Kalamata, besieged by Petrobey and his Mainotes, had fallen even before the arrival of Kolokotrones. Of the Ottoman inhabitants, the men were massacred, the women and children enslaved; and on the banks of the wild mountain torrent that rushed past the town twenty-four gorgeously vested priests, surround- ed by an army of five thousand warriors, sang a sol- emn Te Deum, in celebration of the first victory of the war. The career of Kolokotrones opened less auspi- ciously. His great reputation had gathered about him a force of some six thousand men, with which he pro- ceeded to lay siege to Karytsena. The appearance of five hundred Turkish cavalry was, however, sufficient to raise the siege, and put his untried levies to rout. The check was only a temporary one; for Kolokot- rones, encouraged by a vision of the Virgin, soon gathered another army; and, before long, nearly every town of the Morea had fallen into the hands of the in- 62 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE surgents, the Mussulman prisoners being everywhere mercilessly put to the sword. The conflagration now spread to the north of the Gulf of Corinth. At the beginning of April the Albanian Christians of Dervenakhoria ^ rose ; and the whole of Attica and Boeotia speedily followed suit. Salona, instigated by the Klepht Panourias, threw off the Ottoman yoke; and, in Levadia, the Mussulmans found themselves besieged by the Christian population under the heroic Diakos. At the beginning of May, the Mussulmans of Athens were surrounded in the Acropolis. Missolonghi, a name afterwards so famous in the history of the rising, did not declare itself till June. In the Morea meanwhile, at the beginning of April, only a few of the Ottoman fortresses still held out; and these were closely invested by hordes of savage warriors. Two thousand were blockading Coron; three thousand others besieged Modon and iNavarino ; four thousand had collected before Patras, and ten thousand on the heights round Tripolitza. Acrocorinthos was beset by eight thousand insurgents, while three thousand of the wild tribesmen of the Maina surrounded Monemvasia. The last-named fortress was the first to fall. 1 The ancient Meg-aris. SIEGE OF MONEMVASIA 53 Perched on an inaccessible rock, it could not be taken by storm; but the place was insufficiently provisioned, and the hope of relief from the sea was cut off by the arrival of a Greek squadron. The garrison were soon reduced to the most desperate straits; but a practical hint of what they might expect, if they surrendered, had been given them by the besiegers, and they were determined to resist to the uttermost. For the Greeks, thinking to intimidate them, had brought ashore some wretched prisoners, men and women, whom they had captured on the high seas, had led them before the walls, and there butchered them in cold blood. After this object lesson in the methods of their enemies, fam- ine alone could persuade the Mussulmans to surrender. Soon their food stores were all exhausted; and for a while they subsisted on vermin and the seaweed scraped from the rocks; but soon this, too, was no more to be obtained; and now, from time to time, gaunt and fierce-eyed bands of warriors would issue from the fortress in furious sorties, drive back the be- siegers, and drag in the bodies of their slain enemies, the last ghastly sustenance suggested by their despair. At this point. Prince Demetrius Hypsilanti, who had recently been appointed commander-in-chief in the Morea, interposed. Prince Demetrius, whose arrival in Greece had been greeted with unbounded delight, 54 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE was the brother of Alexander Hypsilanti, whose fail- ure in the Principalities has already been recorded; and, in spite of the collapse of the northern rising, he proclaimed himself the lieutenant of his brother, and persisted in looking upon himself as acting under the authority of the Hetairia. He was no more remark- able for capacity than his brother, but he was superior to him in character; and there is no reason to suppose that he was otherwise than an honourable, brave, and upright man, or that he would not have done all in his power to prevent the ghastly and shameful scenes which he was too soon to witness.^ Hypsilanti now proposed, by the mouth of Prince Gregorios Cantacuzenos, terms to the besieged. He promised that, if they would cease to prolong a useless resistance and peaceably submit, their homes would be respected and they would have nothing to fear for their 1 M. Lemaitre (p. 71), whose bias is obvious, maintains the contrary; he accuses Hypsilanti of having foreseen what would take place after the capitulation, ' though he none the less displayed a lively indignation against his men, which gained him the momentary esteem of our officers.* Since, even by M. Lemaitre's admission, he had the esteem of the French officers on the spot, it should require more than the bare assertion of a prejudiced partisan to make us believe him guilty of a base and senseless crime. Cf. Gordon, History of the Greek Revolution, i. 220. ' Even his enemies were forced to confess that, to ardent patriotism, he united courage, integrity, and humanity.' MASSACRE AT MONEMVASIA 55 lives; or, in case they should prefer to leave the country, that he would place two Spezziot brigs at their disposal, with orders to land them on any part of the coast of Asia Minor they might select. It is impossible to be- lieve that these promises were made in bad faith; but Hypsilanti was a vain man, he had but recently been placed in a position of unaccustomed command, and he probably quite misjudged the amount of authority he was likely to have over the undisciplined brigands who formed the bulk of his army. This is most probably the measure of his responsibility in the awful scenes that followed. The Turks, weakened by famine, and rendered desperate, whether they trusted the promises or not, grasped at the last straw of hope that was held out to them. They opened the gates of their citadel, and laid down their arms. The greater number of them now elected to go into exile and the work of embarkation began. Six hundred had already gone on board the brigs, when, suddenly, the Mainotes burst into the town, murdering and outraging all those who had not as yet succeeded in reaching the shore, or who, trust- ing in the promise of Prince Demetrius that their homes and lives would be spared, had chosen to remain in the town. Those on the ships were meanwhile car- ried out to sea, and, after a voyage of some hours, were 56 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE landed, not on the coast of Asia Minor, but on a (ieso- late rock in the ^gean; where, after being stripped of their clothes, insulted, and beaten, they were left, without food or covering, to perish/ A few were saved by the exertions of a French merchant, M. Bonfort, who, hearing of their case, chartered an Austrian ship, and took off those who survived. It has been very usual, in speaking of atrocities committed by the Greeks, to condone them by talking of ^ the cruel re- prisals of a wild people for cruel wrongs/ Let us then see what manner of men the Mussulmans of Monem- vasia were. Admiral Haglan, commanding the French squadron in the Levant, in a report sent home to his Government, in 1821, says: ' In the fortress of Malvoise (Monemvasia) were found three hundred Greeks, who had not been molested in any way by the Turks. On the contrary, these had treated them, dur- ing the famine, like brothers, and had always respected their churches; but the Mainotes and the Greeks of the Morea did not repay them in kind when they took the town ; they committed all sorts of infamies in the mosques of the Turks.' ^ 1 Archives du Ministere de la Marine, 1821; Lemaitre, p. 74. 2 Lemaitre, p. 73. I should not have ventured to tell this story on the authority of so tierce a Mussulman as M. Lemaitre, had he not substantiated it by citing- unimpeach- able authorities. The account in Finlay (i. 261) is slightly MASSACRE AT VRACHORl 57 Everywhere, indeed, the conduct of the insurrec- tion was characterised by the same treachery and un- bounded cruelty. It may perhaps be permissible to make allowances for the excesses of a wild people, whose passionate hatred, suppressed for centuries, had at last found vent. But nothing can excuse the callous treachery which too often preceded deeds of blood; and since Europe passed a heavy judgment on the cruel reprisals of the Turk, historical justice does not allow us to hide the crimes by which they were instigated. Let two more examples suffice. Vrachori was the most important town of Western Hellas. It contained, besides the Christian population, some five hundred Mussulman families and about two hundred Jews, people for the most part of some wealth and consideration. The Ottoman garrison consisted of six hundred Albanian mercenaries. On the 9th of June the town was attacked by about two thousand Armatoli, w^ho were afterwards increased to four thou- sand. The Albanians, seeing themselves outnumbered, and having, through their chief ISTourka, relations with the Armatoli, opened negotiations with the Greeks, and were allowed to march out with arms and goods. less horrible; that in Gordon (i. 228) differs, to the advan- tage of the Greeks; but the authorities quoted by M. Le- maitre were not accessible to the author. 58 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Before leaving, however — ^thinking, doubtless, that it was a pity all the spoil should fall into the hands of the Greeks — they plundered the Turks, and forced the Jews to give up to them all the money and jewellery in their possession. With the wealth of which they were thus deprived these poor wretches had hoped to purchase the protection of the captains of the Arma- toli; and as soon as they could do so, they informed the Greeks of I^ourka's treachery, and laid down their arms on promise of personal safety. That promise was immediately violated. The massacre commenced with the Jews. Men, women, and children were murdered without mercy, after being tortured to make them reveal their supposed hidden treasures. The poorer Mussulmans shared the same fate; and only a few of the wealthier families were spared by the Greek lead- ers, who hoped to hold them to ransom. The horrors that followed the surrender of !N'ava- rino on August 19, 1821, were only less revolting be- cause they were perpetrated against the will of the leaders, who had made preparations for transporting the Turkish prisoners to Egypt. ^ While the confiscated 1 Cf., however, Gordon, i. 231. He adds, in a footnote, tliat one of the negotiators of the capitulation boasted to him that he had succeeded in purloining and destroying the copy given to the Turks, that no proof might remain of any such transaction having been concluded. MASSACRE AT NAVAEINO 59 valuables of the Turks were being carried on board a Greek ship in the harbour, a dispute arose as to the way in which the women were being searched/ A general massacre ensued. Phrantzes,^ a Greek eccle- siastic who was present, describes the scene with horror and indignation. * Women, wounded with musket balls, rushed into the sea, seeking to escape, and were deliberately shot. Mothers, robbed of their clothes, with infants in their arms, plunged in the water to con- ceal themselves from shame, and were then made a mark for inhuman riflemen. Greeks seized infants from their mothers' breasts, and dashed them against the rocks. Children, three or four years old, were hurled living into the sea, and left to drown.' Let us be just. The awful massacre of Chios, which roused the public opinion of Europe against Turkey, and made the independence of Greece a possibility, was a great crime, as it was a great mistake; but it was not without its motive, or its justification, according to the wild code of barbarous peoples. The other atrocities of the Greeks, however, paled before the awful scenes which followed the storming of Tripolitza. Throughout the summer and early au- tumn of 1821, the town had held out against the be- 1 Lemaitre, p. 76, is more explicit. 2 Quoted in Finlay, i. 263. 60 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE siegers. A force had been sent by Khurshid Pasha to its relief, but this had been defeated by Kolokotrones at Yaltetsi, and the place, which had waited in vain for the arrival of the Ottoman fleet with supplies, was reduced to the last stage of starvation. At the end of September it was obvious that the fall of the town could not be postponed for many days. At this time the command-in-chief of the army was held by Prince Demetrius Hypsilanti; and had he remained before Tripolitza, it is possible that the horrors which followed might have been avoided, and the Greek cause saved from an indelible disgrace. Unfortunately, however, the Greek leaders, for their own purposes, wanted him out of the way; and he allowed himself to be persuaded to go to the north of the Morea, to prevent the Turks landing troops from the Gulf of Corinth. The insurgent chiefs took ad- vantage of his absence to prepare for the surrender of the town by selling promises of protection to the richer inhabitants, and by opening, during the negotiations, a brisk trade in provisions, at exorbitant prices, with the starving townspeople. Meanwhile, also, Elmas Bey, who commanded the Albanian garrison, was ar- ranging special terms with Kolokotrones for himself and his men. The cupidity of the chiefs dragged on the negotiations, till the soldiers, suspecting that they STORMING OF TRIPOLITZA 61 were being cheated of their prey, took the matter into their own hands, and stormed the town. For three days the miserable inhabitants were given over to the lust and cruelty of a mob of savages. [N'either sex nor age was spared. Women and children were tortured before being put to death. So great was the slaughter that Kolokotrones himself says that, when he entered the town, from the gate to the citadel his horse's hoofs never touched the ground. His path of triumph was carpeted with corpses.^ At the end of two days, the wretched remnant of the Mussulmans were deliber- ately collected, to the number of some two thousand souls, of every age and sex, but principally women and children, were led out to a ravine in the neighbouring mountains, and there butchered like cattle. The fall of Tripolitza completed the first phase of the Greek rising. ITauplia, Patras, and one or two other fortresses still held out; but, within six months of the beginning of the revolt, the Greeks were prac- tically masters of all the country to the south of the Isthmus of Corinth. In Northern Greece, meanwhile, the fortune of the war had been more varied, and the first successes * Kolokotrones, Airjyrja-is ^Vfi^dvrav, p. 82. *To aXoyo fxov OTTO Tflt TfixT) ((OS TO. (Tapdyia dip fnamaf yrj.* 62 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE of the Greeks liad been followed speedily by a series of reverses. Diakos and the Bishop of Salona, who, after the capture of Levadia, had advanced to Ther- mopylse, were here defeated, on the 5th of May, by Khurshid's lieutenants, Omer Yrioni and Mehemet. Diakos and the Bishop were both captured and exe- cuted; and the victorious pashas pressed on across the defiles of Mount Oeta. At the Khan of Gravia they were intercepted by the famous captain of Armatoli, Odysseus, who was compelled to retire, after a stub- born resistance. The Ottomans now recaptured Le- vadia, burnt it to the ground, and inflicted another de- feat on Odysseus at Scripu. Instead, however, of ad- vancing at once to the relief of the Acropolis, they wasted a month in inaction, and allowed time for the Greeks to recover. All the attempts of the insurgents to capture the Acropolis had hitherto failed; and, save for the scarcity of water, the fortress would have been impregnable. As it was, it held out until the rumour of the Ottoman advance spread a panic among the be- siegers, who rapidly melted away; and on the 30th of June, Omer Yrioni, at the head of some two thousand troops, relieved the garrison, after a blockade of eigHty- three days. Meanwhile Mehemet Pasha had been awaiting at Thebes the arrival of strong reinforcements before be- GREEK VICTORY AT VASILIKA 63 ginning a regular advance into the Morea, for the pur- pose of raising the siege of Tripolitza. The supineness of the Turks allowed the Greeks to form their plans without interruption ; and the passes of Oeta and Par- nassus were occupied by Odysseus and other Rumeliot captains of renown. At the end of xVugust an Otto- man army of some five thousand men, under the three Pashas, Bayram, Memish, and Shah in Ali, advanced through the pass of Thermopylae, and on the 4th of September attacked the Greeks at Yasilika, on the road to Levadia. The latter waited until the Turks had entered a defile of Mount Oeta, when they fell upon them on either flank, pouring a hail of bullets into their ranks, embarrassed as they were with cav- alry, baggage, and a train of artillery. The victory of the Greeks was complete. Encouraged by a rumour of the arrival of Odysseus, the Armatoli charged the broken ranks of the Ottomans, sword in hand, and routed them, with the loss of eight hundred men.^ After this defeat, and the news of the fall of Tripolitza, Omer Yrioni commenced his retreat from Attica; and the Turks withdrew across the mountains into Thessaly. In West Hellas and Epirus, during the same period, the interest of the war had centred round the last stand 1 Gordon, i. 279. 64 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPEISTDENCE of Ali Pasha in Janina, and the activity of the Suliots. Here the struggle had not yet assumed the aspect of a purely Greek and Christian revolt; and the Snliots under the brave Marko Botzares had formed an alli- ance against the Ottomans, not only with the Greek captains of Armatoli, but with those of the Albanian Mussulman chiefs who were devoted to the cause of Ali Pasha. Together they had made considerable headway against the Turks, and had all but conquered the important town of Arta, when rumours of the mas- sacre of Mussulmans at Yrachori reached the Albanian chiefs, who, realising now the true nature of the revolt, threw in their lot with their co-religionists. Although this rendered any active policy against the Turks im- possible, West Hellas remained, pending the fall of Ali Pasha and the reduction of the Suliots, in the hands of the Greeks. By the end of the year 1821, then, the Hellenic cause was everywhere triumphant. The Turks, it is true, still occupied the important island of Euboea, and, on the mainland, held the Acropolis and the fortress of Lepanto; while, in the Peloponnese, ISTauplia, Patras, Coron, and Modon still defied all the efforts of the Greeks to take them, and the castles command- ing the entrance to the Gulf of Corinth remained in Ottoman hands. With these exceptions, however, all THE WAR AT SEA 65 Greece to the soutli of the Thessalian frontier had been freed from the Mussulman yoke. v In achieving this result the activity of the Greeks at sea had played no inconsiderable part. As early as the 7th of April, the important island of Spezzia had declared for the Hellenic cause, and a squadron of eight brigs was at once fitted out for a cruise along the coast of the Peloponnese. Off Milos they surprised and captured a Turkish corvette and brig. The Mus- sulmans on board were taken to Spezzia, publicly tort- ured and executed.^ This was the first episode in the naval struggle which reproduced at sea the heroism and the cruelty of the war on land. On the 23rd of April Psara followed the example of Spezzia : an event of great strategical importance to the Greeks, because the Psariot sea force was enough to prevent the Turks of Asia Minor sending reinforcements to their com- patriots in the Morea. Hitherto Hydra, the most im- portant of the ^ naval ' islands, had held back, owing to the timidity of the ruling oligarchy. On the 28th of April, however, the people rose, under the dema- gogue Oeconomos, ousted the oligarchy, and hoisted the Greek flag. The islands now combined their forces in a single fleet, under Jakonaki Tombazes, a worthy and honourable man, though a poor admiral. 1 Finlay, i. 209. 5 66 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPEI^DEW^CE iNot even a ISTelson, however, could have kept dis- cipline in a fleet of whicli each ship was a dem- ocratic community in whose management every common seaman had a voice. The Greek war vessels were in fact little better than pirates; and the war at sea became, in its want of plan and in its incidents of horror, a counterpart of that on land. A single in- stance may suffice. Two Hydriot brigs, commanded by Sachtouris and Pinotzi, captured a Turkish ship laden with a valuable cargo, and carrying a number of passengers. Among these was a recently deposed Sheik-ul-Islam, or patriarch of the Orthodox Mussul- mans, who was said to be going on pilgrimage to Mecca, accompanied by all his family. He was known to have belonged to the tolerant party in the Ottoman Govern- ment; and, indeed, it was his efforts to prevent the cruel reprisals which, at Constantinople, followed the news of the massacres at Galatz, Yassy, and in the Morea, which had brought him into disfavour, and caused his exile. There were also several other Turkish families on board. The Hydriots murdered all in cold blood; helpless old men, ladies of rank, beautiful slaves, and little children were butchered on deck like cattle. The venerable old man, whose crime had been an excess of zeal on behalf of the Greeks, was forced to see his family outraged and murdered before his MURDER OF THE SHEIK-UL-ISLAM 67 eyes, for, with a refinement of cruelty, lie was spared to the last. ' An attempt was afterwards made to ex- tenuate this unmerciful conduct, by asserting that it was an act of revenge. This assertion is false. Those who perpetrated these cruelties did not hear of the execution of their Orthodox patriarch until after they had murdered the Orthodox patriarch of their enemies. The truth is that, both by land and sea, the war com- menced as a war of extermination. Fanatical pedants talked of reviving the glories and the cruelties of classic times as inseparable consequences of Greek liberty. They told how the Athenians had exterminated the inhabitants of Melos, and how the Spartans had put all their Athenian prisoners to death after their victory at Aegospotamos.' ^ The capture of this valuable prize was of little ser- vice to the Greek cause which the cruelty that attended it had sullied ; for the sailors refused, on their return to Hydra, to share the booty in accordance with the na- tional rules, and insisted on keeping it all to them- selves. This provoked such bitterness of feeling that the fleet was for the time broken up, and no united ac- tion against the Turks was possible. Meanwhile the Ottoman Government had been thrown into the greatest difficulties by the revolt of 1 Finlay, i. 215. 68 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE the islands, and the necessity of fitting out a fleet against the very people from whom it had hitherto drawn its naval recruits. The Turks themselves were no sailors, and, invincible as warriors on land, were helpless at sea. They were now forced to man their ships with untrained fishermen and boatmen, and a motley crowd of Algerine pirates and Maltese and Genoese adventurers. Under these untoward circum- stances, though the revolt of Samos on the 30th of April had impressed upon them again the necessity for action, it was not till the 3rd of June that the Ottoman fleet left the Dardanelles. It consisted even now of only two line-of-battle ships, three frigates, and three sloops of war, and these were undermanned, and sailed by crews who had but a rudimentary knowl- edge of seamanship. The Greek fleet had meanwhile divided into two squadrons, of which the larger, consisting of thirty- seven sail, under Admiral Tombazes, cruised in the Archipelago, with a view to intercepting the Ottoman fleet. The other, which sailed to blockade Patras, and watch the coasts of Epirus, was commanded by Andreas Miaoulis, a name destined to become famous in the annals of the war. The character of this remarkable man raises him high above the crowd of self-seeking ruffians by whom ANDREAS MIAOULIS 69 he was, for the most part, surrounded. He was the Kallikratidas of modern Greece; and to him apply perfectly the words in which Grote paints the character of the noble Spartan: ' Besides perfect courage, en- ergy, and incorruptibility, he was distinguished for two qualities, both of them very rare among eminent Greeks: entire straightforwardness of dealing, and a Pan-Hellenic patriotism alike comprehensive, exalted, and merciful.^ ^ While most of the other leaders of the revolt were thinking only how they could best at- tain to wealth and power, he devoted the whole of his private fortune to the cause of Greece ; and even when all his efforts to inspire his colleagues and his crews with some of his own disinterested patriotism failed, his unshaken firmness might well have earned for him a guerdon similar to that once bestowed by the Roman Senate on the Consul who had shared in the crushing defeat of Cannae and yet ^ had not despaired of Rome.' Even by the bitterest critics of the Greeks he is ex- cepted from the condemnation which is the lot of all the rest. By one of these a story characteristic of him is told.^ The men of his squadron had been pillaging 1 Grote, History of Greece, ed. 1883, vii. 403. 2 The French Captain Peyronnet. He adds: ' L'admira- tion dont j'etais rempli pour cet homme-la s'est sauvee du naufrage de mon enthousiasme pour ses compatriotes, et meme pour la cause des Grecs.' Lem. p. 68. 70 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE on shore, without his having the power to stop them. On complaint being made to him, he deplored that he was powerless to prevent the outrages, but asked at how much the damage was reckoned. The reply was: ' Six hundred piastres,' and Miaoulis thereupon paid the money out of his own pocket. Amid the sordid chicanery and lurid horrors of the war, it may per- haps be excusable to have lingered awhile over this brighter picture. The squadron under Tombazes had fallen in with the Ottoman fleet; but though superior in numbers, the Greeks were very inferior in size and in weight of ordnance, and they did not venture to come to close quarters. Taking advantage of their more easily man- aged craft, they manceuvred just outside the range of the Ottoman guns, waiting for an opportunity to strike. This soon presented itself. In the early morn- ing of the 5th of June, one of the Turkish battle-ships, which had been separated from its companions during the night, was observed to the north of Chios, making all sail in the direction of Samos. The Greeks imme- diately gave chase; and it did not take long for their light vessels to overhaul the slow-sailing Ottoman. The Turkish captain, seeing that he had no chance of regaining the squadron, now changed his course, and made for the Bay of Eresos on the JSTorth-West USE OF FIRE-SHIPS 71 coast of Mitylene, where he cast anchor and cleared for action. He had scarcely finished his preparations when the Greeks attacked him. Sailing under the stern of the Ottoman, so as to avoid his broadside, they poured in a hail of shot; but their guns were of small calibre, and the bullets for the most part buried themselves harmlessly in the solid timbers of the Turkish battle-ship. Tombazes, recognising after a while the futility of this method of attack, gave the order to cease fire, and summoned a council of war to meet on his flag-ship. It was now determined to have recourse to fire-ships, which it was remembered had been employed with such signal success by the Russians against the Otto- man fleet at the battle of Tchesme in 1770. A Psariot captain consented, for a sum of 40,000 piastres, to sacrifice his brig for the purpose; and this "was now hastily prepared, and, manned by a crew of twenty men, who had been secured by the promise of a bounty of a hundred dollars each, it Avas despatched during the night against the enemy. It was, however, timidly manoeuvred, was ignited too soon, and drifted, mag- nificently ablaze, out to sea, without coming anywhere near the Ottoman ship. Soon after this failure, two more fire-ships having arrived from Psara, another attempt was made, but 72 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE with no better success. At last, however, a Psariot named Pappanikolo succeeded in steering liis hrulot into the Turkish ship, and jamming its bowsprit under the prow of the Ottoman. Setting light to the fuse, he jumped with his crew into a boat, and rowed away while the fire-ship burst into a blaze. The flames, driven by the stiff breeze over the Turkish ship, soon enveloped it in a mass of fire. A couple of boatloads of the Ottoman sailors succeeded in getting clear of the burning vessel; and many of the crew who could swim leaped overboard and made their way ashore. But between three and four hundred souls are sup- posed to have perished on board the doomed ship.^ The 'secret of the war' had been discovered; and this conflagration was ' the naval beacon of Greek liberty.' The disasters of the Ottomans at sea were some- what compensated for by the destruction, shortly be- fore the fall of Tripolitza, of Galaxidi, a flourishing seaport in the Gulf of Corinth. This was attacked on the 1st of October by a Turkish squadron under Ismail Djebel Akhdar, who took advantage of the longer range of the Ottoman ordnance to silence the Galaxi- diot battery and cannonade the town, without himself 1 Cf. account from MS. journal of Admiral Tombazes. Gordon, i. 254 (Appendix). DESTRUCTION OF GALAXIDI 73 coming within gunshot of the Greeks. Under these circumstances, no effective resistance was possible ; and the victory of the Turks was complete. The town, the boats on the beach, and the vessels which were aground, were burnt. The whole of the remainder of the Gal- axidiot navy, which chanced unfortunately to be all in the harbour at the time of the attack, fell into the hands of the Ottomans, who carried off no less than thirty-four brigs and schooners.^ Hypsilanti, who was at the head of a considen-ble force on the opposite shore, was compelled to witness the fate of Galaxidi, without being able to do anything to prevent it. Note. — The Greek seamen have been accused of cowardice as well as cruelty. It is pointed out that they seldom ventured to approach boldly within range of the Ottoman guns, and stand up to their enemy in fair fight, and never so much as dreamed of laying their vessels alongside even a disabled enemy and taking it by the board. To the first of these criticisms the answer is pro- vided by the action in the Bay of Eresos; for this proved the weak ordnance of the Greeks to be powerless against the heavy Turkish ships. When the combatants met on more equal terms, the Greeks proved themselves not de- ficient in courage; as is shown by their gallant attack, 1 Finlay, i. 272, following* Gordon, i. 250, who, however, calls Ismail, Ismail GihraUar. Cf. Lem. 157. 74 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE under Captain Hastings, on the Ottoman squadron in tlie Bay of Salona, later on in the war. As for boarding, to make this possible some proportion is necessary between the size of the combatants; and for the Greeks to have laid their little brigs and sloops alongside the great bat- tleships of the Turks might have been magnificent, but it would not have been war. The object of war is not to exhibit one's prowess, but to disable the enemy as speedily as possible, with the least amount of damage to oneself. This fact explains and Justifies the use of fire-ships, which the Greeks were accused of using only because they w^ere too cowardly to employ other means of attack. As to the amount of courage needed for their effective employment, this surely could hardly be exag- gerated. Brulots were to the wooden navies what tor- pedo-boats are in our own day; and no naval officer would deny that, for the effective handling of torpedo craft in time of war, nerves of steel and a swift and un- erring judgment are absolutely essential. It is true that the crews of the fire-ships almost invariably escaped; but this was due, not to the inevitable conditions of this method of warfare, but to the bad watch kept on board the Ottoman ships, and the panic which the approach of a inilot generally created. i CHAPTEE V Turkish reprisals — Execution of the Patriarch of Constan- tinople — Effect of the news on European opinion — Pro- test of Russia — Suppression of the revolt to the north of Thermopylae — Anarchy in Greece — Attempts to form Governments — First Congress of Arg-os — The Constitu- tion of Epidaurus — Mavrocordatos elected President The crimes by which, at the outbreak of the rebellion, the Greeks disgraced themselves and their cause were not without their expiation. The massacre of Tripo- litza was followed by a pestilence, due to the masses of unburied corpses, which swept off thousands of the Greeks; and the vengeance of Sultan Mahmoud com- pleted what the pestilence had left undone. When the news of the Greek atrocities in the Morea reached Constantinople, the slumbering embers of Mohammedan fanaticism burst into flame, and raged with uncontrollable fury. The perpetrators of the outrages might be beyond their reach, but through- out the Ottoman empire was scattered a large Greek population, on whom the Turks might execute a justice 75 76 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE not accustomed to discriminate between the innocent and tlie guilty. Sultan Malimoud himself proved both his energy of character and the terrible intensity of his wrath. !N'ot content with ordering the arrest of mem- bers of the Hetairia wherever he could lay hands on them, he determined by a signal act of vengeance to strike terror into the whole Greek world. According to the Ottoman theory of government, the higher State officials are personally responsible for the con- duct of those they rule. Already, on the 16th of April, Musuri, the Greek Dragoman to the Porte, had been led forth in his official robes to execution. A more terrible example was to follow. The Patriarch of Con- stantinople was, as has been already explained, at once the civil and religious head of the Greek nation. As the civil head, he was responsible to the Ottoman Government for the conduct of the Greeks; as the religious head, he was the centre of all that was to them most venerable and sacred. The war had been proclaimed from the first as a crusade and a war of extermination. Sultan Mahmoud now wished to prove by a signal example that he took up the challenge. In the early morning of the 22nd of April the Patriarch Gregorios celebrated solemn mass, as usual, surrounded by his prelates. After the service a synod was assem- bled, and a messenger from the Palace read a firman EXECUTION OF THE PATRIARCH 77 of the Sultan deposing Gregorios, and ordering the as- sembled bishops to proceed at once to the election of a new patriarch. The terrified prelates, with tears and trembling, had no choice but to obey; and, while the new Head of the Orthodox Church was receiving the investiture of his office, the venerable Gregorios, still in his sacred robes, was led forth and hung before the gate of the patriarchal palace. The body, after being suspended for a day or two, was cut down and handed over to the Jews, to be dragged through the streets and thrown into the sea. Picked up by a Greek ship, it was recognised and carried to Odessa, where it was buried by the Russian authorities with the honours of a martyr.^ For a moment it seemed as though this act of bar- barous vengeance would defeat its own ends, by break- ing up the concert of the Powers and provoking an anti- Turkish war. A thrill of horror and indignation ran through all Christendom. To the Emperor Francis it was almost as though the Pope himself had been mur- dered. In Pussia especially, the whole population was deeply stirred, and, at the slightest word, would have 1 It is characteristic of the theological amenities for which Constantinople has in all ag-es been distinguished, that the Greek ' Catholics ' are said to have sung a solemn Te Deiim to celebrate the death of the heretical PatriarcJj. Mendelssohn, i. 214. 78 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE risen as one man to revenge the death of the Orthodox Patriarch. Had Alexander I. been guided by the sen- timent of his subjects, had he even been in Russia at the time, war could hardly have been delayed. As it was, he was too deeply committed to the policy of Met- ternich; and, after wavering awhile, he contented himself with ordering his ambassador, Stroganoif, to present a vigorous protest to the Sultan, and withdraw from Constantinople. To Metternich a massacre more or less beyond the eastern borders of Austria was a matter of little moment compared with the peace of Europe and the policy of reaction of which he was the director. To Castlereagh, too, a period of repose seemed absolutely essential to Europe, after the ex- haustion of the jSTapoleonic wars; and a proposal for a joint demonstration of the Powers at Constantinople, for the protection of the Christians, failed owing to the strenuous opposition of Lord Strangford, the Brit- ish ambassador. For the time Turkey was freed from all fear of European intervention between her and her rebellious vassal. Meanwhile the course of the struggle itself was once more demonstrating the wisdom of the Machia- vellian maxim, ^ ISTo half measures.' Outside Greece proper and the Archipelago, the ruthless severity of the Sultan had produced its effect, and, by the begin- QUESTION OF THE NATIONAL GOVERNMENT 79 ning of 1822, such isolated risings as had occurred were all suppressed, and the country to the north of Janina and of Mount Pelion restored to the Ottoman allegiance. To the south of this line, the no less * thorough ' policy of the Greeks had been similarly crowned with success. All the Morea, except the for- tresses of ^auplia, Coron, Modon, and Patras, was now in their hands; and to the north of the Gulf of Co- rinth, they were masters of the country as far as the Gulf of Arta and the pass of Thermopylge. From a people of slaves the Greeks had become a nation. The problem that now presented itself to them was to evolve out of the anarchy of the insurrection a sys- tem of national government: a problem which, un- fortunately for them, they were far less capable of solving than they were of carrying on a guerilla war. That sectional patriotism, with its local feuds and jeal- ousies, which had proved the ruin of the ancient civili- sation of Hellas, was quite as characteristic of the modern Greeks; while the sweeping away of the Ot- toman power removed the only paramount authority, and gave full play to all centrifugal forces. The com- munal organisation, untouched by the revolt, served indeed still to preserve order among the people; but the confiscation of Turkish property to the public use liad placed vast sums in the hands of the rebels, and as 80 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPEl^DENCE there was as yet no centralised fiscal system, this fell into the hands of the primates and military leaders, who too often used it to further the ends of their own private pleasure or ambition. The result was a com- plete anarchy, which nothing but the habits of obedi- ence of the people to their local authorities, and the bond of union which they had in their common relig- ious enthusiasm and hatred of the Turk, could have prevented from ending in the ruin of the Greek cause. Every primate, or bishop, or military chief assumed himself to have succeeded, in his own locality, to the Sultan's prerogative. Under them was the whole mili- tary, fiscal, and criminal government of the various dis- tricts, and as yet they owed no allegiance to any higher authority. Nor had there been the slightest effort to reform the most crying abuses of the Ottoman system. JSTothing proves more clearly that the revolt of the peasantry was motived by religion rather than politi- cal grievances than that, after their success, no im- provement was made in the financial arrangements of the country, or in the method of collecting taxes ; that nothing was done for the security of property, to es- tablish law-courts, or to arrange for a publication of accounts.* In the local centres, indeed, public opinion put some check on the worst abuses; but, in the wider 1 Finlay, i. 281. THE SENATE OF THE PELOPONNESE 81 sphere of which a patriotism purely local could take no account, corruption and knavery reigned supreme. The political history of this period is a disgusting record of petty jealousies, intrigues, shameless pecula- tions and contemptible incompetence; and only the heroic patience and indomitable fortitude of the people at large can relieve the sordidness of the picture. Xo one seems to have had any idea of the right way to set about constructing a constitution. That of England had been in its origin a ^ concentration of local machin- ery,' and had the Greek constitutions similarly been based on the existing communal system, they would have had more chance of success. As it was, the at- tempts at constitution-making of the successive I^a- tional Assemblies, when they did meet, were but plau- sible schemes evolved by pedantic doctrinaires out of their own inner consciousness, and were for the most part still-born. Meanwhile the demand of the people for some sort of central executive could not be neglected; and on June 7, 1821, there was formed the Gerousia, or Sen- ate of the Peloponnese, a purely oligarchical commit- tee based upon no popular suffrage, of which the au- thority was to last till the fall of Tripolitza. This derived especial power from the co-operation of Arch- bishop Germanos, whose eloquence, assumed sanctity, 6 82 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE and energy at the beginning of the revolt had given him great popularity. The subsequent career of this prelate, however, did little to fulfil the hopes excited by its commencement; and his popularity soon waned, when it was seen that his religious zeal was but a mask to hide unbounded pride, ambition, and love of pleas- ure. He soon cast aside his pretended sanctity, and assumed the airs and gorgeous attire of a barbarian prince. This role he had not the qualities necessary to maintain; and he was soon pushed aside by others, no less unscrupulous, but more able than himself.^ The arrival, on the 22nd of June, of Prince De- metrius Hypsilanti introduced a new factor into the situation. Holding that his brother Alexander, as chief of the Hetairia, was thereby ipso facto Prince of Greece, he believed himself entitled to act as his viceroy, and announced himself as empowered to act as lieutenant-governor of the country on his brother's behalf. In -^dew of the already notorious ill-success of Prince Alexander in the Principalities, the preten- sion was foolish; but Demetrius was understood to be supported by Eussia, and received, therefore, an enthusiastic welcome from the soldiers and common people. By the oligarchs, headed by Germanos, on the other hand, who were jealous of outside interfer- 1 Gordon, i. 237. DEMETRIUS HYPSILANTI 83 ence, he was bitterly opposed; and his arrival was fol- lowed by a war of intrigues and recriminations. At last, he made a bold move to induce the people to de- clare actively in his favour. He suddenly left the camp before Tripolitza, and issued a proclamation stating that all his efforts on behalf of Greece had been rendered nugatory by the selfish opposition of the primates and senators. The stratagem was suc- cessful. On the news of his departure, the soldiers rose in arms; and for awhile the lives of some of the oligarchs were in danger. Order was only restored by their promising to submit to the authority of Prince Demetrius, who was now brought back in triumph from Leondari, and established in undisputed power. Had he possessed the ability, he was now in the position to have become ' the Washington of Greece ; ' but he was, in fact, too incompetent to retain the au- thority he had won. Bit by bit this was usurped by his lieutenants, or resumed by the primates; and since he was in the eyes of the common people supreme, the misdeeds of his supposed agents were laid at his door, and so, with the gTadual decline of his power, his popularity also waned. In the midst of the confusion caused by these quar- rels and intrigues, on the 3rd of August, another Phanariot Greek, Alexander Mavrocordatos, also ar- 84 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE rived in Greece. He had already acquired at the court of Karadja, Hospodar of Wallachia, a considerable reputation for political ability, which, however, his long career in the service of Greece did little to justify. He was known, moreover, as an honourable man and a sincere patriot. But neither his reputation nor his honesty availed to reduce the chaos which he found to order; and after struggling awhile unsuccessfully with the confusion, he caused himself to be nominated administrator of "West Hellas, and left for Misso- longhi. Here, without further authority from the central Government, he proceeded to summon a meet- ing of deputies from the provinces of Acarnania, zEtolia, "Western Locris, and the part of Epirus which had joined the Greek cause. Theodore Kegris, who was acting as administrator in East Hellas, convoked a similar meeting at Salona, of deputies from Attica, Boeotia, Megaris, Phocis, and Eastern Locris. At Mis- solonghi a senate was appointed to conduct the execu- tive government; and a corresponding body at Salona took the high-sounding title of the Areopagus. Meanwhile Hypsilanti had made another bid for popularity, and summoned the l!Tational Convention to Argos, where it met in December. From the out- set it was violently opposed by the oligarchy of pri- mates and military chiefs; and since, in Argos, these FIRST CONGRESS OF ARGOS 85 had, througli their armed followers, complete control, the Assembly was moved to Piada, not far from the ancient Epidaurus. The oligarchs, in the meantime, remained in Argos, and proceeded to revive the Pelo- ponnesian Senate, claiming for it such complete su- premacy in the Morea, that the central Government remained practically powerless. Greece was thus, at the end of the year 1821, divided into three sections, each under its own senate, and all nominally depend- ent on the central Government. But the Constitu- tion published by the Assembly at Piada, known as that of Epidaurus, remained a dead letter; and the provincial senates only exercised any power in so far as they were governed by the faction which chanced to have command of most men and money. For the most part their pedantic discussions were treated by the wild chiefs of the revolt with the contempt they deserved. The new Constitution was proclaimed on January 22, 1822, and Alexander Mavrocordatos was elected President of Greece. He had few of the qualities necessary to maintain so difficult a position. It is true that in culture and experience, as in probity of motive, he was superior to the mass of the leaders of the revolt; but he lacked strength and firmness, and the breadth of view which enables a statesman to look beyond the 86 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE details of administration and to understand tlie wider issues involved in the government of men. To him, moreover, applied with double force a remark which Goethe, in a conversation with Eckermann, afterwards made with reference to Count Capodistrias. ' Capo- distrias,' he said, ^ will in the long run not be able to maintain himself at the head of Greek affairs; for he lacks a quality which is essential to such a position. He is no soldier. ]^ow we have no example of any- mere diplomat being able to organise a revolutionary State, or secure the obedience of soldiers and military chiefs.' This proved profoundly true of Capodistrias; it was no less profoundly true of Mavrocordatos. Moreover, whereas Capodistrias, a man of dignified and imposing presence, never affected to be a soldier, Mavrocordatos, in spite of his spectacles and his plump little figure, more than once made himself ridiculous by attempts to play the general, with disastrous results both for himself and Greece. Thus it came about that he entered on his office under inauspicious omens. Thinking to strengthen his position by adding mili- tary glory to his diplomatic prestige, he attempted, on his way from Missolonghi, to reduce the Turkish gar- rison of Patras. But he only proved that nature had not intended him for a general. The Ottomans over- whelmed him in a sortie; and, defeated, and stripped ALEXANDER MAVR0C0EDAT09 87 of all save the clothes on his back, he arrived igno- minioiisly at the seat of government. It may be doubted whether, at that time, the strongest and wisest of rnlers could have reduced the chaos of Greek affairs to order. It needed the awful lesson which was about to be given them, to make the Hellenes forget, for a v/hile, their selfish ambitions and jealousies, under the compulsion of a common fear and a common passion of revenge. CHAPTEK YI Death of Elias Mavromichales — Odysseus of Ithaka — ^His treachery before Karystos — The massacre of Chios — The vengeance of Kanaris — Mahmoud's plan for the recon- quest of Greece — Odysseus in East Hellas — Fall of the Acropolis — Massacre of the Turks — Invasion of Dramali — The Turks at Argos — Defeat of Dramali in the pass of Devernaki, and at Agionori — Destruction of the Turkish army — Expedition of Mavrocordatos for the relief of the Suliots — Defeat of Peta — Advance of Omer Vrioni in West Hellas — First siege of Missolonghi The year 1822, which was to prove on the whole so full of glory and of hope for Greece, began with a series of disasters. The rumour that Sultan Mahmoud was preparing a great expedition to crush out the re- volt in the Morea determined the Greek Government to forestall him by pressing the war in Eastern Hellas. The Acropolis of Athens was still held by a Turkish garrison, and Elias Mavromichales, the eldest son of Petrobey, had been invited by the Areopagus to aid in its reduction. At Athens, however, he was met by an invitation from the Euboeans to help them in an DEATH OF ELIAS MAVROMICHALES 89 attack on Karystos; and as this seemed to promise more adventure than was likely to be found in block- ading the Acropolis, he responded to the appeal. Be- fore his arrival at the camp of the Euboeans, the men of Kumi had already elected a Montenegrin named Yassos as their captain, and Elias Mavromichales, with a rare generosity, consented to share his authority with this comparatively inexperienced soldier. Together they determined to attack the Turkish post at the village of Stura, where a considerable quantity of grain for the use of the garrison at Karystos had been collected. Unfortunately, owing to the neglect of the Greeks to secure in time the pass of Diakophti, and so cut off the possibility of relief from Karystos, the attack failed. The small Ottoman garrison held out until Omer Bey arrived with reinforcements. The Greeks were routed; and Elias Mavromichales him- self was surrounded in an old mill, where for some time he defended himself with great bravery. At last, seeing no chance of relief, he tried to cut his way out, but was killed in the attempt. His death was the first blow to the Greek cause during the year, and created great sorrow; for to the bravery which was usual among the chiefs of the insurrection, he added a dis- interested patriotism which was far from being so common. 90 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Shortly after his death, Odysseus of Ithaka, whose authority, since the death of Diakos, had been para- mount in East Hellas, arrived from Attica with a force of seven hundred men. The Greeks now ad- vanced once more upon Stura, but found it evacuated and cleared of its stores. Karystos itself was then besieged; but suddenly Odysseus, without giving any warning of his intention, marched away with all his men. This action, in one who was suspected of play- ing at all times a double game, so alarmed the rest of the besiegers that they raised the siege. Odysseus, one of the most celebrated leaders of the war, was as Homeric in his personality as in his name, and his feats of physical strength and endurance ri- valled those of the mythical hero from whom he pre- tended to trace his descent. It was said that he could leap clear over the backs of seven horses placed side by side, and that, after his defeat by Mehmet at Gravia on E'ovember 13, 1822, he ran for eight leagues through the rough and mountainous country occupied by the enemy, with scarce a pause, and with no signs of exhaustion or distress.^ Such feats would have been enough to make him a hero among the wild and barbarous mountaineers, even without that courage and cunning which seemed the ordinary qualifications for 1 Mendelssohn, i. 283. ODYSSEUS OF ITHAKA 91 a captain of Armatoli. Strength and courage were indeed his sole apparent virtues. For the rest, he had been, like so many other leaders of the revolt, trained at the court of Ali Pasha of Janina, and had there learned to combine the worst vices of Albanians and Greeks. He was false as the most deceitful Greek and vindictive as the most bloodthirsty Albanian.^ His object in joining the Greek revolt was not to lib- erate Greece from the Ottoman rule, but, if possible, to establish his own authority permanently in Eastern Hellas ; and, if he could achieve this better by attach- ing himself to the Turks, it was certain that he would not hesitate to betray the Hellenic cause. Odysseus himself asserted that he had been com- pelled to retire from Karystos owing to want of food ; but this did not explain his leaving without informing his colleagues of his intention; and the Greeks be- lieved that he had been in treasonable communication with Omer Bey. Possibly the true explanation was that he knew that his enemies, and especially the Min- ister of War, Kolettes, were endeavouring to break his power in Attica, and that he suspected them of hatch- ing some sinister plot against him in his absence. Meanwhile, however, there had arrived from the Archipelago the news of a disaster which threw all 1 Finlay, i. 305; Gordon, i. 405. 92 THE WAR OF GEEEK INDEPENDENCE the other misfortunes of the Greeks into the shade, and for the time made the factions lay aside their quar- rels under the influence of a common horror and thirst for vengeance. Of all the island communities of the ^gean none was more prosperous or more inoffensive than that of Chios. Among their more turbulent neighbours, the well-to-do and peace-loving Chiots had a reputation for stolid simplicity. * Easier to find a green horse,' ran the saying, * than a clever Chiot.' One attempt to rouse the island had failed; but its wealth and general importance made it de- sirable to secure its adhesion to the national cause; and Hypsilanti allowed himself to be persuaded to authorise a Chiot adventurer named Ealli, and a cer- tain Lycourgos Logothetes of Smyrna, to make a de- scent upon it. In March, Lycourgos, with some 2,500 men, landed at Koutari, and, calling on the unwilling Chiots for aid, proceeded to lay siege to the Turkish garrison. From the first he proved himself totally incompetent. ISTot only did he mismanage the opera- tions on shore in every possible way, but he neglected utterly the all-important precaution of keeping the command of the sea. The news of the attack on Chios roused Sultan Mahmoud once more to fury; the ladies of his harem, MASSACRE OF CHIOS 93 too, indignant at the devastations committed in their mastic gardens by the insurgents, clamoured for the suppression of the revolt; and preparations for this were pressed on with unwonted vigour. On the 11th of April, without any resistance on the part of the Greeks, the Capitan Pasha, Kara Ali, landed 7,000 troops on the island. Lycourgos and his rabble had proved their courage by murdering in cold blood the crew of a Turkish felucca which had run ashore, and in general by massacring all the Mussulman captives who fell into their hands. They now, at the approach of the Ottoman force, took to their boats and fled, leaving the wretched Chiots to their fate. The ^ blood bath ' that followed is the most horrible episode in a history of horrors. The Turkish commander, aided by the local Mussulman authorities, made some effort to curb the excesses of the troops, less, perhaps, in the interests of humanity, than in those of the imperial revenue. But the Ottoman soldiery had been rein- forced by hordes of fanatics, who had crowded over from the mainland to share in the holy war; and these it was impossible to control. A few of the islanders succeeded in escaping in Greek vessels ; and even these poor wretches w^ere usually robbed of everything they had saved from the wreck of their homes by the boat- men, who made the surrender of all they possessed the 94 THE WAE OF GREEK IKDEPENDENCE price of safety.^ Of the rest of the inhabitants, some 27,000 are said to have been put to the sword, while 43,000 were collected and sold into slavery; and of a once flourishing community of a hundred thousand souls, barely two thousand remained to people the island. The unhappy Chiots were not long unavenged. On the 10th of April the Greek fleet put to sea under Admiral Miaoulis; and on the 31st, a naval engage- ment was fought off Chios, but without result. The Greeks then determined to have resort to their favour- ite device of fire-ships. On the 18th of June, the prin- cipal officers of the Turkish fleet assembled on board the flagship, to celebrate the feast of Bairam with the Capitan Pasha. The night was pitch dark; but the admiral's vessel, decorated from masthead to water- line with coloured lanterns, was a blaze of light. On board, some three thousand men were celebrating the great Mohammedan festival with laughter and music; and, in the universal jollity, but a poor "watch was kept. Suddenly, through the lines of the Turkish vessels, glided, like dark shadows, two Greek fire-ships. One of these, steered with admirable precision by Kanaris, iCf. Gordon, i. 362. The Philhellene Jourdain himself saw, on the island of Psara, many victims of this ' atrocious speculation.' M6moires Mstoriques, dc. i. 68. EXPLOIT OF KANARIS 95 made straight for the flagship of the Capitan Pasha; and, "unobserved, the cool-headed Greek ran his bow- sprit into an open port of the Turkish vessel, fixed his grappling irons, fired the train, and, quietly slipping with his men into a boat, rowed off, while the fire-ship burst into flame. In an instant, sails and cordage being soaked in turpentine, the fire ran up the rigging, and, carried by the wind over the Ottoman ship, rap- idly enveloped it in a mass of flame. An awful scene followed. Completely taken by surprise, the Turks had no time to save themselves. The few boats that were launched v/ere, for the most part, swamped by the panic-stricken crowds that leaped into them. The other ships of the fleet sheered off, to avoid sharing the fate of the admiral, or to escape the hail of bullets from her exploding guns. Of the whole 3,000 men on board, but very few survived. Kara Ali himself was struck by a falling yard, and carried dying ashore. The second Greek fire-ship, less fortunate, or less skil- fully steered, did not effect anything. This episode, when Twice twenty self-devoted Greeks assailed The naval host of Asia, at one blow Scattered it into air — and Greece was free,i 1 Savage Landor. 96 THE WAE OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE earned for Kanaris a fame wliich spread far beyond the limits of the Greek world, and which, among the Hellenes themselves, will endure as long as there is a Greek nation to cherish the memory of its heroes. The frantic delight with which the news of this exploit was hailed at the time was possibly not shared by the surviving Chiots. Several hundred of them, captive on board the Turkish ship, had perished with it. The miserable island, too, was now exposed again, by way of reprisals, to a second devastation, which completed what the first had left undone; and even the mastic villages, whose industry was so indispen- sable to the ladies of the Sultan's harem, were this time not spared. Their vengeance sated, the Turks sailed away to take refuge, from Kanaris and his fire- ships, under the guns of the Dardanelles. The news of the massacre of Chios awoke the Greeks to some sense of the seriousness of their posi- tion. But, in the meantime, while they had been wrangling and intriguing, Sultan Mahmoud had been making preparations for a first great effort to recon- quer Greece. The troubles with Eussia, in which the execution of the Patriarch had threatened to involve him, had been smoothed over; and, above all, the de- struction of the power of Ali Pasha had set free the army of Khurshid for the suppression of the Hellenic khurshid's plan of campaign 97 revolt. Mahmoud, deceived by the ease with which the insurrection had been suppressed in Thessalj, Macedonia, and Epirus, believed that his troops would experience little difficulty in the task of reducing the whole of Greece. The plan of campaign which he devised was a good one, and, if properly carried out, promised to be successful. Nauplia, the most important fortress in the Morea, with its two impregnable citadels of Palamidi and Itsh- Kale, had now for months been blockaded by the Greeks, and its relief was the first object of the Otto- man campaign. So far, the place had resisted all the efforts of the Greeks to capture it; and an attempt made by Hypsilanti, in December, 1821, to carry the castle of Palamidi by storm, had ignominiously failed. But the garrison, now reduced to the last stages of starvation, could not expect to hold out much longer; and on the 30th of June a capitulation was actually signed, by which the Turks agreed to surrender, if not relieved within twenty-five days. If, then, the Otto- man campaign was to attain its object, there was little time to lose. At Larissa, Khurshid, now appointed Seraskier, or Governor-General, of Kumelia, had collected a large body of troops; and another army, under Omer Yrioni, was assembled in Epirus. It was arranged 7 08 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPEITDENCE that, while the latter advanced by Western Hellas on Missolonghi, with a view to capturing this, and cross- ing thence to Patras, the main army under Khurshid's direction should force the Isthmus, advance to the re- lief of I^auplia, where it was to be met by the Ottoman fleet, and march thence on Tripolitza. Here it was to establish its headquarters, in the very centre of the Arcadian plain; and it was judged that if the fleet threw supplies into the fortresses of Coron, Modon, and Patras, communications with these could be easily established, and that the Morea being thus cut up into several sections, the population, deprived of mutual support, would be reduced to submit before the winter. As the spring advanced, Dramali,^ to whom the command of the expedition was given, was ordered by Khurshid to push on into the valley of the Sper- cheios, and there review his troops. Before this was effected, an attempt was made, under the leadership of Odysseus, to destroy the Turkish troops in Zeituni. The plan had been devised by the Areopagus, and its failure, due to various causes, led to the relations be- tween that body and the masterful Klepht becoming somewhat strained. An attempt was made to remove Odysseus from his command in East Hellas; where- upon he immediately resigned his commission in the 1 Mohamet Ali Pasha of Drama. FALL OF THE ACR0P0LI8 99 Greek army, and remained at the head of his troops as an independent chieftain! It now became the first object of the central executive to destroy the power of Odysseus in East Hellas; and Alexis IsToutzas and Christos Palaskas, partisans and friends of Kolettes, were sent, the former to act as civil governor, the latter to supersede Odysseus in the supreme command of the forces. Their appointment to these posts had been kept secret; but Odysseus knew perfectly well the object of their coming. His suspicious nature, more- over, led him to believe that they had been commis- sioned by Kolettes to assassinate him, a task for which their previous reputations seemed to point them out as very suitable agents. He determined to frustrate the plot. He received them with all the polished courtesy of which he w^as capable, and gave them a hearty welcome. After entertaining them at supper, he conducted them to the small wayside chapel which was to serve them for bedroom, v/ished them good- night, and left them. In the morning they were found murdered. The horror which this crime excited, and the an- archy which was its immediate result, were soon after- wards overshadowed in the public mind by the news of the fall of the Acropolis, an event of great impor- tance to the Greek cause, but which was again sullied 100 THE WAR OF GEEEK INDEPENDENCE by the treachery and cruelty by wliicli it was accom- panied. On tlie 21st of June, the Turkish garrison, driven by want of water to surrender, agreed to a capitulation, by virtue of which they were to be re- moved to Asia Minor in neutral ships. They were to lay down their arms, but were to be allowed to re- tain one-half of the valuables in their possession. The Bishop of Athens, a man of honourable character, and president of the Areopagus, made the Greek lead- ers swear on the Holy Mysteries to observe the terms of the capitulation. Eleven hundred and fifty Mussulmans, of whom only one hundred and eighty were capable of bearing arms, surrendered on these terms, and were lodged, pending the completion of the arrangements for their removal, in the extensive buildings contained within the ruins of the Stoa of Hadrian, formerly occupied by the Yoivode. Meanwhile news reached the town that the army of Dramali had passed Thermopylae. An Albanian savage named Mkkas now incited the people, as a pledge that they would never yield to the Turk, to slaughter the defenceless prisoners; and the Klephts and Armatoli, joined by the rabble of Athens, ever ready to make mock-heroics the excuse for satis- fying their native lust for cruelty, set willingly to work. A scene of horror followed which has only too MASSACRE AT ATHENS 101 many parallels during the course of this horrible war. For a whole day the streets of Athens resounded with the shrieks and cries of tortured women and children. The leaders, who had sworn, by all they held most sacred, to see the capitulation carried out, did not care, or were afraid, to interfere. The foreign consuls did what they could; but the mob had tasted blood, and their interference all but proved fatal to themselves. At last the arrival of two French ships of war in the Piraeus put a stop to the slaughter. Under a strong es- cort of marines, some three hundred and ninety of the Mussulmans, who had sought refuge in the French, Austrian, and Dutch consulates, were conducted to the harbour through a mob of wild tribesmen and Athen- ian citizens, who brandished their weapons, and yelled like demoniacs at the sight of their escaping prey.^ 1 The account given by Finlay (i. 348) of this horrible affair differs from that of M. Lemaitre (p. 108) . The former gives the Greeks credit for having been ashamed of them- selves. After the departure of the refugees in the French Consulate, * shame operated, and all the Turks who re- mained in the Austrian and Dutch consulates were allowed to depart unmolested.' But M. de Reverseaux, command- ing the Active (quoted verbatim by M. Lemaitre), states that he only succeeded in rescuing the latter with the ut- most difficulty from the ' mob of assassins ' : ' Je criai que e'etait sur moi qu'ils devaient tirer, et non sur les restes infortunes d'une population desarmee; mais que s'ils avaient I'audace, je trouverais promtement des ven- 102 THE WAE OP GREEK INDEPENDENCE Vengeance in this case followed hard upon the footsteps of crime. The advance of Dramali was facil- itated bv the quarrels among the Greek chiefs; and at the head of twenty-four thousand infantry and six thousand cavalry he marched through Boeotia and Attica, without encountering serious opposition. Athens and the Acropolis next fell into his hands, and the Ottomans wreaked their vengeance for the slaughter of their co-religionists. Eiimour exaggerated the numbers of the Turkish host; no such display of military pomp had been seen since, in 1715, Ali Kummargee had crossed the Sper- cheios to reconquer the Morea from the Venetians; and at the terror of its approach all opposition van- ished. The Isthmus was passed ; and the impregnable rock of Acrocorinthos fell, abandoned by its cowardly garrison without a blow. Had Dramali proceeded with ordinary caution, the Greek revolt would have been at an end ; and already Metternich and his allies were beginning to rejoice at the prospect of its speedy collapse. But his undisturbed march led the Turkish commander, very naturally but no less fatally, to un- derrate his enemy. He expected to meet everywhere with as little opposition as he had hitherto experi- geurs . . . ! Mon mouvement les deconcerta," &c. Cf. also Gordon, i. 412. ADVANCE OF DRAMALI 103 enced, and that the whole of the Morea would submit on the mere rumour of his arrival. Advised to make the Acrocorinthos his base, and, from this centre, subdue the country methodically and piece by piece, he rejected the cautious counsel with scorn. Instead, he decided to advance with his whole force to the relief of ^auplia. Fortune seemed to smile upon the enterprise. The direct road to l^auplia lay over the difficult pass of Devernaki, and this the Greeks had neglected to oc- cupy. Full of contempt for so despicable a foe, the Turks pushed on over the mountains, and descended into the plain of Argolis, without even thinking it worth while to secure their communications, by occu- pying the defiles in their rear. At the rumour of their approach, panic terror seized the eloquent legislators of Greece, assembled at Argos. Ministers and depu- ties, officials, and place-hunters, fled in all directions, leaving the town to be plundered by the wild Klephts and Armatoli.^ Only a few, and notably Kolokotrones 1 Those of the wretched fug-itives who escaped the atten- tions of the Mainotes, by whom they were stripped with- out compunction, and who sought refugee on board Hydriot and Spezziot boats at Lerna, were robbed by the sailors of the last frag-ments of their property, and left to starve in out-of-the-way points of the Morea and Archipelago. Gor- don, i. 422. 104 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE and Demetrius Ilypsilanti, refused to join in the stampede. A small band of Greeks, under the Mainote Kari- yanni, had seized Larissa, the mediaeval castle which crowns the Acropolis of ancient Argos; and here they were joined by Hypsilanti, who, with a band of seven hundred men, threw himself into the fortress. Ill- provisioned and insufficiently supplied with arms, they could not hope to hold out long; but they achieved their purpose of holding the Turks in check until Kolo- kotrones had had time to collect an army. Their desperate courage placed Dramali in an awkward posi- tion ; for he was unable to advance to IvTauplia, leaving an unreduced fortress in his rear; and his neglect of the question of supplies and communications now be- gan to tell. The Ottoman fleet, under Mehmet Pasha, was to have kept pace with him along the coast, and served as his base of supplies. But Mehmet, with true Turkish inconsequence, had preferred to cruise on his own account round the Peloponnese; and the army of Dramali was, therefore, left without a base, and without supplies. The very folly of the Greeks had turned to their advantage; for, between the moun- tains and the sea, the Ottomans were now fairly caught in a trap, and it seemed almost as though the Greeks had purposely left the door open in order to lure them to destruction. DESTRUCTION OF DRAMALl's ARMY 105 Dramali was soon persuaded of the necessity of falling back by the way he had come, before his sup- plies were utterly exhausted, and on the 6th of August began his retreat. But in the meantime Kolokotrones had realised the situation, and hurried with a small force to occupy the defile of Devernaki; and, when the Turkish army reached the pass, they found it al- ready in the possession of the Greeks. The vanguard, consisting of some thousand Albanian mountaineers, succeeded in evading the Greeks by following diffi- cult and circuitous paths; but the main body of the Ottomans attempted to force their way through the narrow defile; and here they were overwhelmed by a murderous fire, which soon choked the road with the bodies of men and horses, and made it impossible for them to advance. It was a massacre rather than a battle; and nothing but the plundering instincts of the Greeks saved the Ottoman army from absolute annihilation. A few of the better mounted delhis suc- ceeded in spurring over the heaps of dead and dying, and cutting their way through to Corinth; but the rest of the army, with the loss of some four thousand men, and of all its baggage, was forced to return into the plain of Argolis, with less chance than ever of being able to force its way out. Dramali seemed as though stunned by this blow; 106 THE WAR OF GREEK USTDEPENDENCE and a whole dav passed in inaction. Then the abso- lute impossibility of remaining longer in the barren plain of Argolis forced him to move, and he deter- mined this time to attempt to force his way out by the pass of Agionori. Once more the indiscipline and greed of the Greeks proved the salvation of the Turks. Kolokotrones had arranged, with Mketas and several other chiefs, a plan for cutting off the Ottoman re- treat; but this broke down, owing to the Armatoli waiting to plunder the Turkish camp, while those who reached the pass in time to intercept the Turks de- voted more attention to the Ottoman baggage than | to the Ottomans. With the loss of about a thousand men and all his train, Dramali, breathless, footsore, and bedraggled, at last reached Corinth. Even at Corinth, however, the Ottomans were not in safety; for the Greeks, encouraged by their un- hoped-for success, were hard on their heels. With the aid of Odysseus, Kolokotrones closed all the passes, and shut up the beaten army in Corinth. Starvation and disease did the rest. Dramali himself died on the 9th of November, and only a miserable remnant of his great host were at length taken off by a Turkish fleet. The collapse of Dramali's invasion decided the fate of IN'auplia. The advance of the Turkish army SURRENDER OF NAUPLIA 107 had encouraged the defenders, already reduced to the last most desperate straits, to persevere; and the ap- pearance off the harbour of Mehmet's fleet had given them an instant's hope. This, however, had been dashed by the cowardice and incapacity of the Otto- man admiral, who sailed away without attempting anything; and when, therefore, they heard the tid- ings of Dramali's defeat, the Turkish garrison lost all hope of succour, and at last, weakened by hunger and disease, consented to surrender. Already, on the night of the 12th of December, the castle of Palamidi, which the Turks were too weak to hold any longer, had been occupied by the Greeks; and, under these circum- stances, the conditions granted by Kolokotrones to the garrison were far less favourable than those agreed to by the treaty of the 30th of June; but, such as they were, the presence of an English frigate in the har- bour ensured the terms of the capitulation being ob- served; and the Turks were removed by sea to Asia Minor. Only Ali Pasha, the governor, who refused to sign the capitulation, was held a prisoner. While the Greeks were thus successful on land, the courage of Kanaris had secured them another victory at sea. He had succeeded in destroying with a hriilot the flagship of the Turkish vice-admiral, as it lay at anchor in the midst of the Ottoman fleet between 108 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Tenedos and Troas; and this exploit so alarmed the Capitan Pasha, that he retired with the Ottoman navy under the guns of the Dardanelles, leaving the Greeks masters of the open sea. In "West Hellas, meanwhile, the other half of Khurshid's plan of campaign had likewise started with success, and ended in disaster. Before marching south- ward to effect his junction with Dramali in the Morea, it was necessary for the Ottoman commander to re- duce the Suliots, that bravest and most celebrated of the Albanian hill tribes, whose desperate resistance to Ali Pasha of Janina had once roused the sympathy and admiration of Europe, and who were now in arms against the Ottoman power. Though they had not as yet formally thrown in their lot with the Greeks, Mavrocordatos, whose fiasco before Patras had not cured him of his belief in his military capacity, deter- mined to march to their relief. At the head of a con- siderable force, comprising the only disciplined troops in the Greek army — the regiment commanded by Colonel Tarella, and the corps of Philhellenes, con- sisting entirely of foreign officers, commanded by Colonel Dania — he crossed to Missolonghi, and ad- vanced upon Arta. The Ottoman forces in Arta were commanded by Reshid Pasha, known to the Greeks and Albanians BATTLE OF PETA 109 as Kiutayeh,* an officer as experienced and capable as Mavrocordatos was the reverse. The latter made his headquarters at Kombotti, where he remained, while the Greek army advanced some fifteen miles further, and took up a position at Peta. Here, disadvanta- geously posted and without having entrenched them- selves, they were attacked, on the 16th of July, by the Turks in overwhelming force. In the absence of the commander-in-chief, no one possessed sufficient au- thority to produce unity of action among the hetero- geneous elements forming the Greek army. The Phil- hellenes, indeed, fought with desperate courage; but the treachery of the chief Gogos, who had been en- trusted with the defence of the key of the position, suffered the Turks to attack them both in front and rear, and only some twenty-five succeeded in forcing their way through at the point of the bayonet. At the same time Colonel Tarella fell, and his regiment was annihilated.^ This battle had several important effects, apart from its leaving the Turks free to reduce the Suliots; for it destroyed the prestige of Mavrocordatos, and 1 He had been Pasha of Kiutayeh in Asia Minor. His father had been a Georgian priest, and he himself was a convert to Islam. 2 For a detailed account of this battle see Gordon, i. 388. 110 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE all hope of forming a strong central government under his leadership. It inspired, too, the wild Greek war- riors with an intense conviction of the superiority of their own irregular methods of warfare over those of European discipline, a conviction all the more fatal as, just at this time. Sultan Mahmoud was plan- ning the reorganisation of his army on Western models. The defeat of the Greeks at Peta, and another at Splanga, rendered the position of the Suliots hope- less. Even in these straits, however, their reputation for dauntless courage made the Ottoman commander unwilling to drive them to desperation, and obtained them favourable terms. Once more they evacuated their impregnable mountain fastnesses, and, receiving in compensation a sum of 200,000 piastres, crossed over into the Ionian Islands. Henceforward they cast in their lot with the Greeks, and became, for better or for worse, a conspicuous element in the War of Lib- eration. Meanwhile the Greeks had spent the short period of respite, due to the Suliot defence, as usual, in inter- necine feuds. The difficult pass of Makrynoros, through which any force advancing into West Hellas from Epirus would have to make its way, they left undefended; and when Omer Yrioni, Khurshid's FIRST SIEGE OF MISSOLOKGHI 111 lieutenant, at last marched southward, he had no diffi- culty in pushing as far as Missolonghi. This insignificant little town, which lies on the shore of a shallow lagoon, between the mouths of the Aspropotamos and the Phidari, did not look as though it would present any serious obstacle to his further ad- vance. Garrisoned only by some six hundred men, its sole fortifications were a low earth wall and a shal- low but muddy ditch, its only armament some anti- quated guns. Had the Turks advanced at once to the assault, the place must have fallen. As it was, Omer preferred to commence a regular siege, and on the 16th of November sat down before the town. The Ottoman army had been joined by crowds of Albanian Armatoli eager to share in the expected booty. The defenders, under Mavrocordatos, were full of courage and enthusiasm ; and nothing occurred to damp their ardour. A fleet of Turkish ships, sent by Yussuf Pasha from Patras to blockade the town by sea, was dispersed by a Hydriot squadron ; and a thou- sand men from the Morea, under Petrobey, crossed the Gulf as a welcome reinforcement to the sparse garrison. The Turkish bombardment produced no ef- fect; for the cannon balls sped away over the roofs of the low houses, and the shells from the Ottoman mortars sank in the filth of the unpaved streets and 112 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE courts without exploding. At last Omer decided to assault; and chose the night of January 6, 1823, the Greek Christmas day, for the enterprise, with the idea that the Greeks would be all at church. But the garri- son had received information of the move ; and, when the assault commenced, it was the besiegers, and not the besieged, who were surprised. A murderous fire greeted the Albanian brigands as they floundered in the muddy ditch. They broke and fled, leaving two hundred dead behind; while the victorious Greeks lost no more than four men. Omer now decided to raise the siege, and retired, in some confusion, back through the pass of Makrynoros, leaving part of his siege train and ammunition behind. The aged Khur- shid, on receiving the news, poisoned himself, antici- pating by only three days the order for his execution which had been despatched from Constantinople. CHAPTER VII Attitude of the Powers — Policy of Canning — Russo-Turk- ish war postponed — Threatened break-up of the Holy Alliance — Dissensions among- the Greeks — Odysseus in East Hellas — Kolokotrones — Second National Assembly at Astros — Feud between the civil and military elements — Petrobey elected President — Kolokotrones defies the Assembly — Campaign of Yussuf Pasha in East Hellas — Cruise of Khosrew Pasha — Invasion of Western Hellas by Mustai Pasha — Exploit of Marko Botzares at Kar- penisi — Successful defence of Anatoliko — Renewal of civil strife — Government flies to Kranidi — First Civil War — Submission of Kolokotrones The campaign of 1822 had resulted altogether favour- ably for the Greeks; and from the diplomatic stand- point, also, the new year opened under promising au- spices. The news of the massacre of Chios had dealt a severe blow at Metternich's efforts to counteract the growing influence of Philhellenic sentiment in Eu- rope; and there were not wanting signs of a change in the attitude of the Powers. Alexander, it is true, still remained faithful to the Holy Alliance, refused to receive the Greek envoys sent to him at Verona, and 8 113 114 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPET^DENCE dismissed his Greek Minister, Capodistrias. Thus far the diplomacy of Metternich had triumphed. For a moment, however, it seemed as though the war be- tween Eussia and Turkey which he dreaded was on the point of breaking out. Certain Hydriot brigs, sailing under the Kussian flag, had been seized in the Darda- nelles by order of the Porte; and the Ottoman Govern- ment, thinking it intolerable that hostile vessels should, under cover of a neutral flag, defy it at its very doors, thereupon claimed and exercised the right to stop and search all ships passing through the straits. This ac- tion still further increased the tension already existing between the two Governments. To the protests of Eussia the Porte replied by a polite but firm insistence on what it considered to be its rights; and for some time the situation appeared extremely critical. But Metternich was anxious, at all hazards, to prevent Eusso-Turkish complications; and, above all, to pre- vent the Greek question from becoming entangled with those that were purely Eussian.^ He now moved heaven and earth to persuade the Porte to concede the Eussian demands; and in this he was vigorously sec- onded by Lord Strangf ord, the English Ambassador at Constantinople, whose policy at all times was but a re- flection of that of the Austrian Chancellor.^ Their 1 Mendelssohn, i. 307. 2 ibid. THREATENED DISRUPTION OF HOLY ALLIANCE 115 united efforts, at last, succeeded in overcoming the stubborn opposition of the Porte, and prevailing on it to sign an agreement which, for the time being, post- poned the danger of a Eusso-Turldsh war. By this treaty the free navigation of the Dardanelles was con- ceded to the ships of all nations, only the Americans being excepted from its terms, ' because the Sultan did not like Eepublicans! ' ^ The Czar now consented to reopen relations with the Ottoman Government, though only, for the pres- ent, informally. M. de Munciaky was sent, as the agent of Russia, to Constantinople, and charged to watch over the execution of the treaty, and to clear up certain other outstanding questions with regard to nav- igation. At the same time, the Russian Minister, Count J^esselrode, while thanking the Porte for the concessions it had made, hinted darkly at certain claims for which as yet no satisfaction had been received.^ The breach was merely patched up, not completely healed, and the danger of a Russo-Turkish conflict was only postponed. Meanwhile the Holy Alliance itself was threatened with disruption. The death of Castlereagh had re- moved one of Metternich's most faithful henchmen, and Canning, who succeeded him as Foreign Secre- 1 Prokesch, i. 306. 2 Ibid. i. 225. 116 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE tary, was heartily favourable to the Greek cause. As early as February 1823 his dispatches to Lord Strang- ford show a complete reversal of British policy; and England now appears, for the first time, as the advo- cate of the cause of the oppressed Christian subjects of the Porte/ On the 25th of March England recognised the Greeks as belligerents ; and the struggle was hence- forward invested with a new significance.^ From this time it became impossible for even the most re- actionary Powers of the Holy Alliance to deal with the Hellenic rising as they had dealt with the popular movements in Spain or !N"aples. The diplomatic game began once more on a new basis: the recognition of the Greek claims. In October 1823 the Czar and the Austrian Emper- or met at Czernowitz, to prepare for the interference of the Powers, in the interests of Europe.^ A divergence 1 Prokesch, i. 196. ' Canning* approached the subject from the relig-ions point of view, which had been, for a hundred years, entirely subordinate in English politics; and he laid thereby special stress on the very aspect of the question which made a peaceful settlement most difficult of attain- ment. It was the danger of Alexander taking- this view which had, two years before, most disquieted the Cabinets; and Eng-land had successfully united with the other Powers _ to draw him away from it.' 2 Mendelssohn, i. 306. 8 Prokesch, i. 227. RUSSIAN PROPOSALS 117 of views became at once apparent. Russia — then, as now, unwilling to see any really powerful State estab- lished on the ruins of the Ottoman Empire, or to en- courage a Pan-Hellenic as opposed to a Pan-Slavonic movement — proposed the opening of conferences on the basis of the division of Greece and the islands into three principalities, under Ottoman suzerainty, and guaranteed by the European Powers.^ In view, how- ever, of the aggressive policy of Russia in the Danu- bian principalities, her motive in making this sugges- tion was too apparent. Austria could not afford to see Russian influence paramount over the whole Balkan peninsula; and Metternich began to suspect that the true interest of Austria lay in the erection of Greece into an independent State. Meanwhile the Greeks had profited little by the lessons of the war. No sooner was the immediate dan- ger removed than the old anarchy once more broke out. The lamentable failure of the attempts of Mav- rocordatos at generalship, as well as the cowardice displayed by the Government on the occasion of Dramali's advance on Argos, had filled the fierce Ar- matoli and their captains with contempt for the civil- ian leaders, and still further accentuated the already deeply-marked line between the parties. Apart fror^ 1 Prokesch, i. 243. 118 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE numberless motives of personal ambition or jealousy, these were divided also by sharply contrasted principles of policy, which were snre, sooner or later, to produce , a conflict between them. On the one side were the 1 Phanariots, and such of the Greeks as had received a European training, and who desired to see Greece es- tablished as a constitutional State on the European model. These were supported also by the islanders, whose commercial enterprise had brought them into contact with European ideas. On the other side were the bishops, primates, and military chiefs, whose sole idea was to sit in the seat from which they had expelled the Turks ; to wear fine weapons and gorgeous clothes, to play the Pasha, to pay nobody and take from all; and, finally, to live on terms of good fellowship with the common people, sharing their pleasures, their cus- toms, their superstitions, and their faith.^ For the present, indeed, at the beginning of the year 1823, the party of the primates made common cause with that of the islanders and Constitutionalists against the military chiefs, whose power now over- shadowed every other authority in Greece. "West Hellas, it is true, was still held for the Government by Mavi'ocordatos, though with a weak hand; but, in East Hellas, Odysseus now reigned with undisputed 1 Prokesch, i. 275. ODYSSEUS IN EAST HELLAS 119 authority; and, in the Morea, Kolokotrones was su- preme. During the summer of 1822, Attica had been given up to anarchy; until, at last, some of those Athenian citizens who had most to lose begged Prince Demetrius Hypsilanti to come and take over the com- mand of the country. On his arrival, however, the garrison of the Acropolis had refused to admit him, and elected Odysseus as their general. Hypsilanti had no choice but to give up his enterprise ; and Odysseus, seizing eagerly at the chance presented to him, pro- ceeded to consolidate his power. He sold the booty captured from the Turks in order to pay his troops, strengthened the defences of the Acropolis, and, dis- solving the Areopagus, summoned another Assembly entirely devoted to his interests. A serious mischance had, however, nearly destroyed his newly acquired power. After the defeat of Dramali, Khurshid Pasha had sent Mehemet, with eight thousand men, to hold the line of the Spercheios; and the Ottoman commander had made a rapid dash with some of his troops, by way of the pass of Gravia, on Salona. After burning part of the to^vn, he had returned by the same road, and on the 13th of ISTovember, was intercepted by a Greek force, under Odysseus, at the inn of Gravia. 120 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE After a sharp fight, the Greeks were routed, and Odys- j sens himself only with difficulty escaped. In terror* lest the Ottomans should now advance into Attica, and lest, in the presence of this danger, the Athenians should elect a new commander-in-chief, he concluded an armistice with the Turks, at the same time offering to make his submission to the Porte, and to secure that of the other captains of East Hellas, on condition of his being continued in his position as a chief of Arma- toli. Though the Turks did not believe in his offers of submission, they accepted the armistice, for their own purposes, and retired to Zeituni for the winter. The peasants of Boeotia and Attica, relieved from imme- diate danger, and able now to sow their fields in peace, gave Odysseus all the credit for saving them from the Turks, and, knowing nothing of the terms of the ar- mistice, began to regard him as an ideal hero. It was, however, the power of Kolokotrones that most excited the jealous apprehensions of the other parties. In the Morea, the possession of ^auplia, which, since its surrender by the Turks, had been held for him by his son-in-law Koliopulos, rendered him supreme; and to break his power became the main object of primates and islanders alike. The Govern- ment in vain demanded admission into ^auplia ; and, when it became plain that Kolokotrones had no inten- NATIONAL ASSEMBLY AT ASTROS 121 tion of surrendering his Vantage ground, it retired to Astros. Here, in December 1822, the new !N"ational Assembly^ for which writs had already been issued, proceeded to collect. Deputies streamed in from all sides, representatives being present even from Crete. Members of the former Conventions seemed to think they had a prescriptive right to sit in the new one, with- out any fresh election; and many deputies appeared who could pretend to represent none but themselves. Among the more prominent leaders present were Pe- trobey, Londos, Zaimis, and many other primates of distinction. Mavrocordatos and Hypsilanti also at- tended; and even Odysseus condescended to appear. Among this motley assemblage there was, of course, little question of useful legislation. The Greeks from of old have loved oratory and the game of debate, and the making of laws better than the observance of them; and the new-born liberties of Greece seemed now in danger of being drowned in a flood of talk, or strangled in a network of intrigues. There was, indeed, some attempt made to establish a criminal code, and to discuss the publication of a budget; and, above all, the necessity was universally recognised of raising money by means of foreign loans. But by far the most important business of the Assem- bly was in connection with the formation of the new 122 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Government, and tlie attempt to oust Kolokotrones from liis dangerous predominance. It was, indeed, tlie feud between the military and tlie civilian elements wliich liad rendered all efforts at legislation impossible. The soldiers, less skilled with the tongue than with the sword, withdrew in dudgeon from the war of words, and formed a sort of Upper Chamber of their own. The measures which survived the strife of tongues in the civilian Assembly were invariably rejected with contempt by this novel House of Lords, wliich, in its turn, originated nothing. That legislation was thus rendered impossible would have mattered little, where a strong administration was so much more needed, if a strong administration could have been formed. But it was just here that the bat- tle of the factions raged most violently, and with the most fatal effect. The Government was to consist, as before, of two councils or committees, one legislative, to represent the Assembly when not in session, the other execu- tive. It became the object of the civilian party to exclude the military element from these committees; and this, as far as their influence in the Assembly was concerned, they were strong enough to effect. The executive council, as constituted by the Assembly, con- sisted of Petrobey as president, and three continental PARTY FEUDS 123 primates : Zaimis, Karalampos, and Metaxas. A fifth place was not filled up, and was reserved for a repre- sentative of the islands. Kolokotrones, however, with threats of violence, obtained the vacant place for him- self. He attempted also to secure the election of his creature, Deliyanni, to the presidency of the legisla- tive committee ; and when this was filled by the choice of Mavrocordatos, he broke out in uncontrollable fury. The Phanariot, with his spectacles, his swallowtail coat, his European airs, and his talk of constitutional government, was an object of loathing to the savage old Klepht. ^ I won't allow you to be president ! ' he cried. ^ If you accept, I will follow you step by step, and throw dirt at that fine European get-up of yours ! ' ^ Kolokotrones now saw that, unless he appealed to arms, his influence in the Government would be lost. For a time, indeed, he and the other military chiefs submitted, grumbling; but on the 10th of April, a fresh aggression on the part of the civilians precipi- tated the crisis. It was now decided by the Assembly to deprive Kolokotrones of the supreme military com- mand, and to vest this in a committee of three. This was but one more example of the unwisdom of making offensive proposals which there is no possibility of 1 Mendelssohn, i. 311. 124 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE carrying througli. Kolokotrones, in the face of this direct attempt to deprive him of his power, threw off the mask, and openly defied the National Assembly. Supported by his bands of Klephts and Armatoli, on whom he could always rely, he now forced the execu- tive council to accompany him to ISTauplia, where it was completely at his mercy; while the legislative com- mittee wandered helplessly from place to place, in con- stant terror from the fierce followers of Kolokotrones, and stripped of all power.^ At this period nothing but the unreadiness of the Ottomans to take advantage of the situation in Greece could have saved the Hellenes from destruction. A stroke of fortune had indeed once more helped their cause; for, early in 1823, the Ottoman magazine of Tophana had been destroyed by fire; and in this im- mense conflagration, the greatest that even Constanti- nople had ever witnessed, vast stores of war material had perished, besides some six thousand houses, and fifty mosques. In spite of the huge loss and inconvenience caused by this accident, Mahmoud yet hoped to prosecute the war with vigour; and once more a double invasion of the Morea was projected. Mustai Pasha was to invade West Hellas, and advance upon Missolonghi; 1 Prokesch, i. 237. EXPEDITIONS OF MUSTAI AND YUSSUF PASHAS 125 while, to prepare and cover this movement, Yussuf Pasha marched by way of Boeotia and Attica upon Salona and Lepanto, with a view to crossing thence to Patras. The moment was very favourable, both by sea and land. In the Morea the strife of parties was raging with full violence ; and, at sea, the island- ers were likewise turning their arms against each other. Hydriots and Spezziots were at daggers drawn; and Samos, under Lycourgos — of sinister memory in con- nection with Chios — was defending itself, by force ol arms, against the unjust aggressions of the Psariots. The Greek fleet had become a mere flotilla of pirate hulls, without organisation or discipline, and as ready to prey upon friend as foe; and not even Miaoulis could reduce it to order. Khosrew Pasha, however, who commanded the Ottoman fleet which, at the end of May, sailed out of the Dardanelles, was not the man to take full advan- tage of the situation. He was in any case more suited to the council chamber than the quarter-deck, and, timid by nature, the fate of his predecessor, Kara Ali, had filled him with a perfect horror of the Greek fire- ships.^ His present cruise was not marked by any con- siderable results. He touched at Mitylene and Chios, embarked some troops at Tchesme, and sailed for i Finlay, ii. 14. 126 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Eubcea, where he arrived in time to relieve Karystos, then being besieged by Grisiotis. Thence he sailed past Hydra, threw supplies into Coron and Modon,and, on the 20th, landed some troops and a large sum of money at Patras. Instead, however, of remaining on the west coast of Greece to support the operations of Mustai, he hastened back to the Dardanelles. Yussuf Pasha had meanwhile opened the cam- paign in East Plellas. Advancing from Thessaly with six thousand men, he marched into Phokis, occupied Salona, and, driving the Greeks out of the passes of Helikon and Parnassus, descended upon Levadia. The Pasha of Eubcea, at the same time, with eight hundred horsemen, raided in the direction of Thebes^ and swept off the harvest. Odysseus now entrusted the defence of the Acropolis to his lieutenant Gouras, who had lately married a beautiful girl of Lidoriki,^ and marched to occupy the defiles of Helikon, while the Athenians took refuge in the island of Salamis. The news of the Ottoman invasion had, moreover, put an end for the time to the feuds in the Morea; and Kolokotrones and Niketas now advanced to Me- gara with a force of Moreots. Other bands also speed- ily collected, and succeeded by a bold guerilla war in driving the Turks back into the plain of the Kephis- 1 See p. 210. EXPLOIT OF MARKO BOTZARES 127 SOS. The Seraskier himself crossed over into Euboea; and, as Odysseus took no measures to prevent it, he was able to drive the Greeks out of the northern half of the island. The Ottoman plan of campaign in East Hellas was, however, shattered. For the invasion of AVest Hellas, meanwhile, Mustai Pasha had assembled at Ochrida an army con- sisting entirely of Albanian tribesmen. Of these five thousand were Mussulman Ghegs, and three thousand Roman Catholic Miridits, whose hatred of the Ortho- dox Greeks had made them the close allies of the Mo- hammedans. As usual, the Greeks, occupied with their own quarrels, had neglected to guard the passes ; and the army of Mustai advanced as far as Karpenisi without encountering any serious opposition. Here, however, it met with a disaster which constituted for the Greeks one of the most brilliant exploits of the war. On the night of the 21st of August, Marko Bot- zares, the Suliot hero, with three hundred and fifty of his clansmen, surprised the camp of Djelaieddin Bey, who commanded the Ottoman vanguard. Four thou- sand Mussulman Ghegs and Catholic Miridits were in the camp ; but so complete was the surprise that little opposition was offered when, slaying and plundering, the Suliots rushed among their panic-striken enemies. 128 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Botzares himself made straight for the tent of the Bey, which had been pitched within a small enclosure sur- rounded by a wall. Raising his head above the wall to see how an entrance could be effected, the Suliot's head became visible against the sky, and he received a bullet through the brain. The death of their beloved leader was a terrible blow to the Suliots, and put a stop to their proceedings, but not before they had slain some two thousand of the enemy. Taking up the body of Botzares, and laden with an immense booty, they re- tired without molestation. Had the ^tolian Arma- toli taken part in the attack, as had been arranged, the force of Djelaleddin must have been annihilated; but their jealousy of Botzares and his Albanians had kept them idle spectators; and, as it was, the Ottoman com- mander kept command of the ground, and Mustai^s march was hardly delayed. At the end of September, the Ottoman commander- in-chief formed, at Yrachori, a junction with Omer Yrioni, who commanded an army of some four thou- sand Mussulman Tosks, an Albanian tribe speaking a dialect distinct from that of the Ghegs, with whom it was by no means on friendly terms. With this hetero- geneous force Mustai, in October, proceeded to lay siege to Anatoliko, a small town in the ^tolian la- goons, about five miles west of Missolonghi. The place SIEGE OF ANATOLIKO 129 was garrisoned by some six hundred men, and entirely unfortified. It had, however, a small battery of six old-fashioned cannon, commanded by William Martin, an English seaman, who had deserted from some ship of war, and who succeeded with these in dismounting the only Turkish gun. The pashas now could do noth- ing but bombard the place with a couple of mortars, which did but little damage, the garrison, in fact, suf- fering much more from thirst than from the Ottoman shells. In this strait, the angel Michael came to their assistance. A bomb from the Turkish mortars fell into the church of the archangel, shattering the pave- ment; and lo! from the hole thus made there bub- bled up a plentiful spring of pure water. ^ Encouraged by this miracle, the Greeks made so stout a resistance, that on the 11th of December Mustai raised the siege. The second half of the Ottoman plan of campaign had thus also broken down ; and the year closed in triumph for the Greeks. ]^o sooner was the danger from the Turks at an end than the Greeks resumed the internecine struggle which the common peril had interrupted. Mavrocor- datos, supported by the party of the primates, and by the islands, determined to make another effort to break the power of Kolokotrones. The executive committee 1 Gordon, ii. 36. 9 130 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE was now entirely in the hands of the military party. Zaimis, indeed, had left it and thrown in his lot with the other primates; but Petrobey, after wavering awhile, had definitely declared for Kolokotrones, whose authority was now supreme. The legislative committee, stripped of all power, had broken up; and the remnant of it, which had established itself in Argos, now opened the struggle by sending to the ex- ecutive to demand a statement of accounts. Tor only reply, Petrobey sent a band of his Mainotes, who dealt with the Rump of the legislative committee as Crom- well had dealt with that of the Long Parliament. The members thereupon fled to Kranidi, opposite the island of Hydra, and put themselves under the protection of the Hydriots. Greece was thus, at the end of 1823, divided into three sections. In East Hellas, Odysseus reigned supreme ; West Hellas was held by Mavrocor- datos for the Government at Kranidi; while Kolokot- rones, established in ISTauplia, and in the Acrocorin- thos, which had surrendered on the 7th of November,^ aimed at subjecting the Morea to military rule. Thus far the violence of Kolokotrones seemed to 1 It is pleasant to record that on this occasion the firm- ness of Niketas prevented the capitulation being- violated. The Moslems were embarked on an Austrian ship, and al- lowed to carry away their arms and a small sum of money. See Gordon, ii. 71. FIRST CIVIL WAR 131 have triumphed ; but the Government at Kranidi pos- sessed many elements of strength which, now that it was removed from the immediate danger of intimida- tion at the hands of the military chiefs, began to assert themselves. It had the prestige of legitimacy ; it pos- sessed in Mavrocordatos a man who was regarded by the opinion of Europe as the constitutional leader of Greece, and in Kolettes the only one of the Greek chiefs who could combine the spirit of the old barbar- ism with that of the new culture; ^ and, above all, it alone would dispose of the loans which were at this time being raised in Europe, of which the arrival was already rumoured abroad. This last indeed, was the factor that ultimately determined the victory of the Government; for, in Greece, even more than else- where, he who held the purse-strings held the reins of power. The Government now determined to make a vigor- ous effort to reassert its authority. It had already opened the struggle by demanding the surrender of ^N'auplia, and openly accusing Kolokotrones of pecula- tion. It now put Petrobey and Karalampos on their trial, deposed Metaxas, and deprived Kolokotrones of the supreme command of the forces; while a new executive council was created, with Konduriottes, a iProkesch, i. 274. 132 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE wealthy Hydriot ship-owner, as President, but Ko- lettes, the astute Epirote, as its moving spirit. To this action of the Government Kolokotrones replied by collecting some thirty-five members of the Assembly at Tripolitza, and there setting up an op- position government. At the same time he began to collect his bands in Elis and Arcadia, strengthened the defences of the Acrocorinthos, and handed over the command of ^auplia to his son Panos; while the influence of Petrobey assured him the support of the Mainotes in Messenia. The Government, on the other hand, could reckon, in the Morea, only on the support of Corinth, which was held by Notaras, and of Achaia and a part of Arcadia, where the influence of the pri- mates Londos and Zaimis was supreme. East Hellas was still held by Odysseus, who played of course en- tirely for his own hand, and could be relied upon by neither party. West Hellas, on the other hand, re- mained, under Mavrocordatos, true to the Government. Konduriottes, the new President, owed his eleva- tion solely to his great wealth, which gave him an in- fluence quite out of proportion to his capacity. In private life he was jovial and good-tempered, and, as a statesman, his riches placed him above the suspicion of corruption; but he was dull, obstinate, and igno- rant, and, above all, full of Hydriot prejudices, which GOVEENMENT OF KONDURIOTTES 133 he was at no pains to disguise.^ Kolettes, who had been physician to Ali Pasha, and combined a certain amount of European culture with a thorough knowl- edge of the best way to deal with barbarous or half- civilised people, was the only man of any capacity in the new administration; and it was under his influ- ence that, to counteract the military preponderance of Kolokotrones in the Morea, the Government now in- troduced bands of Rumeliot and Bulgarian merce- naries, who invaded the Peloponnese by way of the Isthmus, and treated it as an enemy's country. By March 1824 the Government had everywhere the upper hand, and Kolokotrones began to feel himself hard pressed. ITauplia was closely invested; and a Hydriot force, under Miaoulis, marched into Argolis, seized the mills of Lerna, and captured Argos. Kolo- kotrones himself was shortly afterwards defeated be- fore Tripolitza by the united forces of the Bulgarian Hadji Christos and the Moreots; and, after one or two more fights of less importance, w^as compelled to open negotiations with the primates Zaimis and Lon- dos. Through their mediation, an arrangement was ultimately come to by which Kolokotrones submitted to the Government, and surrendered !Nauplia in re- turn for an equivalent in money. 1 Gordon, ii. 191. 134 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE The Government was now everywhere triumphant; but in its very victory were contained the seeds of future troubles. Zaimis and Londos were accused of making too favourable terms with Kolokotrones;^ and the first symptoms of a rupture between the islanders and the Moreot primates became apparent. To the disgust of the Peloponnesians, the Suliot Photomaras was made governor of I^auplia; and this first instance of the undue favour, which the administration of Konduriottes was about to show to the continental Greeks and the islanders, so offended Londos and Zaimis, that they withdrew from E^auplia in dudgeon. 1 Gordon, ii. 100, 102. CHAPTER Vin Arrival of Lord Byron in Greece — Effect on European opinion — The first Greek loans — Byron's opinion of the Greeks — He goes to Missolongfhi — His death — Presidency of Konduriottes — Renewed dissensions — The second Civil War — Comx3lete victory of the Government — Im- prisonment of Kolokotrones In the autumn of 1823, when the civil dissensions were at their height, Lord Byron arrived in Greece. Even before he publicly announced his intention of joining the Greek cause, he had exercised an immense influence in arousing the Philhellenic enthusiasm of Europe; and now that the genius whose fame ex- tended throughout the length and breadth of Christen- dom, proclaimed that he was prepared to devote health and fortune, and, if need be, life itself, to his ideal of a free Hellas, the eyes of the civilised world were di- rected with a new interest on the affairs of Greece. It was largely owing to the influence of Byron that the two first Greek loans had recently been floated in 135 136 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEP30NDENCE London. It is tlie surest proof of the genuineness of tlie Philhellenic sentiment in England at that time, that two loans, one of 800,000Z. and the other of 2,000,000?., should have been floated without diffi- culty, within a few days of each other, only on such very unsatisfactory security as could be offered by an insurgent Government constantly at feud within it- self. Byron himself brought out with him the first instalment of 40,000?.; and, when he realised the act- ual condition of Greece, he felt serious qualms at hav- ing helped to induce people to invest in so doubtful a speculation. For the time being, indeed, the money was not handed over to the Greek Government, but banked at Zante, where, after Byron's death, it was detained for a still further period by order of the au- thorities of the Ionian Islands. The question of what became of it when it was ultimately handed over to the Greek Government, or what was the destination of the subsequent instalments, has some light thrown upon it by the statement of the Philhellene General Gordon, who says, ' "With perhaps the exception of Zaimis, the members of the Executive were no better than public robbers.' ^ A considerable sum was, in- deed, saved from the greed of the Greeks by being ex- pended, more or less wisely, in the national interest 1 Gordon, ii. 72. THE GREEK LOANS 137 before it reached their hands/ The services of Lord Cochrane, the celebrated sailor, who had made a great name for himself in the naval wars of South America, were engaged by a retaining fee of 37,000Z.; though it was not till 1827 that he made his appearance in Greece. Four steamers were also ordered, at a cost of 150,000/.; but of these only the Karteria arrived in time to be of any service; while, of the two frigates which Captain Lallemande, a French cavalry officer, had been sent to America to buy for the Greek navy, only one, the Hellas, ever arrived in Greek waters, and cost 160,000/. By far the greater part of the loans was, however, scrambled for by the factions in Greece itself; and, as one main result of the generosity of Europe, the partisans of the victorious party swag- gered about the streets of ISTauplia, their clothes glitter- ing with gold embroidery, and their belts lined with English sovereigns.^ It is certain that, whatever else may have happened, the unfortunate creditors never received one penny either of the principal or of the in- terest that had been * secured ' to them. Byron himself was, from the moment of his land- 1 But according- to Mendelssohn as much as 1,000,000Z. was absorbed by jobbery in London and New York. See also Finlay, ii. 44, 2 Finlay, ii. 40. 138 THE WAU OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ing, under no illusion as to the character of the people he had come to serve. During the autumn of 1823, he had remained in Cephalonia, one of the Ionian islands then under the British flag, to gather informa- tion with a view to seeing where his help could best be given. To the Greeks, meanwhile, the wealthy English • milordos ' was interesting mainly as a gold mine, to be worked for their own personal advantage; and, during his residence in the island, nearly every statesman or general of any pretensions wrote to him to solicit his favour, his influence, or his money. Kolo- kotrones in Salamis, Mavrocordatos in Hydra, and Me- taxas in Missolonghi competed for his presence; for only where each of them chanced to be could Greece be served. Petrobey, more naively honest, said, straight out, that the best way to save Hellas was to give him, the Bey of the Maina, a thousand pounds. ' Of the Greeks,' Byron wrote, ^ I can't say much good hitherto, and I do not like to speak ill of them, though they do of each other.' ^ In the face of so much disillusion and discourage- ment, the attitude of Byron is full of a singular and pathetic interest. Under circumstances which would have crushed the enthusiasm of a man of less sym- pathetic imagination, he displayed a wide-minded gen- 1 Moore's Life of Byron (ed. 1846), p. 601. BYRON AND THE GREEKS 139 erosity, a steadfastness of purpose, and withal a shrewd common-sense, which could scarcely have been expected of his wayward genius. The glorious Hellas of his dreams had faded, for the time, in the hard, grey light of a day of sordid realities. Yet here, beneath his eyes, was a Hellas, human, pitiful, bleeding from many wounds; it was not for him to gather his poet's robe about him, and pass by on the other side. Many had come out to fight for the cause of Greece thinking to find a country peopled with the heroic types of old, had found instead a race of brigands, and departed in disgust. Many more had remained, their eyes so blinded by Philhellenic prejudice that they were con- tent to gloss over the worst crimes of the Greeks with classical allusions. Byron belonged to neither of these classes. He knew that half-barbarous peoples are full of vices, and that emancipated slaves are not of the stuff that makes heroes. He saw in a very clear light the dishonesty, the meanness, the selfishness of the Greeks ; and yet he did not despair of Greece. * I was a fool to come here,' he wrote, on the 7th of October, from Cephalonia, ^ but, having come here, I must see what can be done.' ^ Once out of the realm of dreams, and brought face to face with facts, the activity of Byron on behalf 1 Moore's Life, p. 601. 140 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE of Greece was cliaracterised by good sense as well as generosity. ISTothing is now heard or seen of the three beautiful classical helmets which he had caused to be made for him before he came out to Greece ; but with practical advice and wisely bestowed material help he is ever ready. He refused, indeed, to squander his money on unworthy objects, or to become, as so many of the Philhellenes had done, the dupe and instrument of a selfish faction. ^ I offered,' he writes, ' to advance 1,000 dollars a month for the succour of Missolonghi and the Suliots under Botzari (since killed) ; but the Government have answered me that they wish to confer with me previously, which is in fact saying that they wish me to expend my money in some other direction. I will take care that it is for the public cause, otherwise I will not advance a para. The Opposition say they want to cajole me, and the party in power say the others wish to seduce me, so between the two I have a difficult part to play; how- ever, I will have nothing to do with the factions unless to reconcile them if possible.' * His efforts to bring about a cessation of the ruin- ous civil strife were as unceasing as they were ineffec- tive. ' The Greeks,' he said, ^ have no enemies in heaven or earth to be dreaded but their own discords.' ^ 1 Moore's Li^e, p. 596. 2 ibid. p. 604. BYRON SAILS FOR MISSOLONGHI 141 He besought the Government to bring about a recon- ciliation between the parties, and threatened that, if union could not be restored, the payment of the loan would be indefinitely postponed. To Mavrocordatos he wrote: ^ Greece is placed between three measures; either to reconquer her liberty, to become a depend- ence of the sovereigns of Europe, or to return to a Turkish province. Civil war is but a road which leads to the two latter. If she is desirous of the fate of Wal- lachia and the Crimea, she may obtain it to-morrow ;if of that of Italy, the day after; but if she wishes to be- come truly Greece, free and independent, she must re- solve to-day, or she will never again have the opportu- nity.' ^ All his prayers and admonitions, however, fell on deaf ears. The Greek factions wanted his money, not his advice ; and, failing the appearance of the for- mer, they rejected the latter with scorn. At last, in January 1824, Byron decided to take a more active part in the war, and sailed for Mis- solonghi. With characteristic perversity, he had chosen, for the scene of his activity, in spite of the entreaties and warnings of his friends, one of the most unhealthy spots in Greece. For one whose health v/as already undermined to settle amid the fever-breeding marshes of the Acarnanian coast was, indeed, to court 1 Dated December 2, 1822, from Cephalonia. Moore, p. 604. 142 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE death ; and Byron went to meet Ms fate with a certain deliberation. He had openly expressed his willingness to surrender his life for the cause of Greece, and, per- haps, he felt that this could be better served by his death than by his life. He regarded himself, to use his own simile, as but one of the many waves that must break and die upon the shore, before the tide they help to advance can reach its full mark. The voyage to Missolonghi was not without its adventures, and twice the military career of the erratic genius was nearly cut short. Once, during a sea fog, the Greek brig which carried him nearly collided with a Turkish frigate; and, but for the fact that the latter took it for a fire-ship, and sheered off in alarm, he must have been captured. A day or two later he was all but wrecked on the coast of Acarnania, the vessel having twice actually run upon the rocks. However, in due course he arrived safely at Missolonghi; though the vessel containing his money and stores was captured by the Turks, and towed into Patras. Here it was de- tained for a few days, but ultimately very generously restored by Yussuf Pasha to its owner.^ 1 Byron himself affected that the Turks had done no more than they were compelled to do in restoring his ship, which was sailing' under the English flag. But it was notoriously laden with stores and money to be used against the Turks; and these at any rate they would have been justified in re- BYRON AT MISSOLONGHI 143 Byron's activity at Missolonghi was not sufficiently prolonged to be of any great importance in affecting the fortunes of tlie war. He took the Suliots, who had been left leaderless by the death of Marko Botzares, into his pay. Fifty of these he formed into a body- guard to protect his own person; while some five hun- dred were enrolled as a regiment of which he took the command. Their lawlessness, greed, and insolence, however, soon compelled him to disband the latter, though he retained his select guard to the last. For the most part, he devoted his money and energy to strengthening the fortifications of the town, being taining. It is certain that, under similar circumstances, the Greeks would have done so. As it was, the Ottoman authorities restored the whole of their capture, greatly to the astonishment of the British ambassador at Constanti- nople, Lord Strang-ford, who even thought it necessary to protest to the Porte against this action, as forming a bad precedent. There is no doubt tl^at the protection of the British tlag was grossly abused during the w^ar by the Eng- lish Philhellenes. Lord Cochrane, after he became High Admiral of Greece, though he himself sailed under the Hel- lenic ensign, was constantly accompanied by his private yacht, flying the English colours, on which, for safety's sake, he kept all his money and valuables! In the present instance, the Eeis-EfPendi, replying to Lord Strangford's remonstrances, said: ' Yussuf Pasha has understood the views of the Sultan; it is better to suffer than to open the door to injustice, which would happen if Pashas were al- lowed to search European ships.' See Prokesch, i. 246. 144 THE WAE OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE aided in this work by the engineer Parry. He also planned an attack on Lepanto; but its execution was prevented by the insubordination^pf the Suliots; and his remaining weeks of life were embittered by the feuds and broils of which he was compelled to be the helpless witness. A regular war broke out between Anatoliko and Missolonghi. Karaiskakis marched, with three hundred men, from the former place, and in revenge for some injury received, carried off two primates from Missolonghi; while the dismissed Su- liots returned and seized the fort of Yasiladi, which commanded the town from the lagoon. Prostrated by sickness and racked with pain, Byron preserved among all these troubles, which he was powerless to prevent, the same unshaken forti- tude and unbroken spirit. Even on his death-bed, his cool courage and indomitable will cowed into si- lence the fierce Suliot warriors, who had burst, with brandished knives and wild threats, into his room. It may perhaps be doubted whether he would, had he lived, have proved a really effective general, or have been able to reunite the shattered fragments of Greece, before they were once more welded together by the blows of a common misfortune. It is certain that his death was the best service that he could have rendered to the cause he had at heart ; for all Europe felt that he DEATH OF BYRON 145 had died an exalted martyr to his faith in the future of Hellas; and no martyr, however humble, ever yet died quite in vain. By the Greeks the news of the death of Byron, which took place on the 19th of April, was received with a becoming regret, which was, however, speedily swallowed up by anxiety as to the fate of the loan of which he had been the trustee. It was, in fact, the prospect of the arrival of this loan which had done more than anything else to secure the victory of the Government in the first civil war; for the contending factions had hastened to make peace, so as not to be absent from the expected division of the spoil. Only Odysseus, planning deep schemes of his own, had held aloof. The presence of Byron at Missolonghi had inspired the wily Klepht with the idea of getting the English poet into his hands, and securing, by an astute diplomacy, the lion^s share of the loan for him- self. He was enthusiastically seconded by Colonel Stanhope (Earl of Harrington), whose fanatical Phil- hellenism made him the blind instrument of the Greek hero's unscrupulous intrigues.^ A meeting had act- 1 For Colonel Stanhope's benefit Odj'^sseus affected to be an ardent partisan of liberty. * His conversation was of newspapers and schools, the rights of the people, and a museum of antiquities.' One morning-, while the Colonel and Odysseus were sitting together in the latter's quarters, 10 146 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ually been arranged between Byron and Odysseus at Salona, when the poet's death put a stop to the plot. Odysseus now, fearing lest he should lose all share in the loan, gave up suddenly all his schemes of inde- pendent action, and hurried to Nauplia to pay court to the Government. After the death of Byron, the first instalment of the loan, amounting to 40,000/., which had been banked by him at Zante, had been, to the dismay and disgust of the Greeks, detained by the English admin- istration of the Ionian Islands. After the destruction of Psara by the Turks,^ on the 2nd of July, however, the money had been handed over to the Greek Govern- ment; and, at the news, not only Odysseus, but Kolo- kotrones, J^iketas, and every other chieftain, great or small, who could formulate the shadow of a claim, hastened to !Nauplia to share in the spoil. For the Government, however, duty and interest for once co- incided; and they determined to fit out a squadron to avenge the disaster of Psara ; a decision which it was all the easier for them to make, as it would benefit their main supporters, the Hydriot ship-owners. Any Dr. Sophienopoulo entered, handed the General a report on the state of the hospital, and answered various queries about it. No hospital existed! Gordon, i. 121, and note. 1 See the next chapter. SECOND CIVIL WAR 147 funds that might be left over, they determined to hold in reserve. For the disappointed chieftains and pri- mates, this put the coping-stone on the edifice of the misdeeds of the Government.^ Konduriottes had used his powers as President throughout to favour the isl- anders at the expense of the other Hellenes; he had thrust his friends, the Hydriot sea captains, into all the most important military and civil commands ; and now the pure stream of British gold was to flow into the same dirty channel ! This was more than the dis- interested patriotism of the Moreot primates and the Klephts of the mainland could stand. Furious with jealous rage and disappointed greed, they retired, with their bands of armed followers, from ISTauplia. Odys- seus was the first to leave. Kolokotrones follov/ed, and with him went the Moreot primates, who, in the last civil war, had been his main opponents: Sissinis of Gastuni, the great landowner of Elis, who lived upon his estates with more than feudal splendour: ^ Londos, the friend of Byron, w^hose influence was para- mount in Achaia: and Zaimis, who could always reckon on the support of a large part of Arcadia. 1 Prokesch, i. 295. 2 See Finlay, ii. 35. The peasants had to fall on their knees whenever they addressed him, even in reply to a simple question. 148 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Again Greece was about to be plunged into civil war: a war, this time, of the Moreots against the islanders. Bj the autumn, the whole of the Morea was in flames; but the conflagration, this time, did not last long. Kolettes, the only member of the Government who possessed either firmness or ability, had hitherto let the folly and incompetence of Konduriottes have full play, because he desired to undermine his author- ity; but, now that serious danger threatened, he took the reins of government into his own hands. The possession of the English gold, and, still more, the prospect of the speedy arrival of a second and larger instalment of the loan, was a tower of strength to the Administration. Kolettes, with promises of plentiful reward, induced the Rumeliots to come to the aid of the Government; and 3,000 men, under Gouras and Karaiskakis, crossed the Isthmus into the Morea. Against this host the scattered forces of the Moreots could do nothing; and in less than fourteen days the rebellion was at an end. The Rumeliot bands harried and wasted the country as though they were fighting the Turk and not their own countrymen. The country houses of Londos and the other primates were burnt, and they themselves forced to fly.^ The death of his son Panos, in a skirmish before Tripolitza, broke the 1 Prokesch, i. 297. KOLOKOTRONES IMPRISONED 149 spirit of Kolokotrones; he surrendered to the Govern- ment, and was imprisoned in a monastery in Hydra. Here, for the time, he languished in a studied neglect, unwashed and unshorn, and prophesying moodily to sympathetic visitors that the time was not far distant when his ungrateful country would supplicate, on bended knees, for his assistance. Odysseus, meanwhile, had recrossed the Isthmus, and had taken advantage of the absence of his lieu- tenant Gouras and of Karaiskakis to make peace with the Turks. In December 1824, he made an arrange- ment by which, as the price of his treason, he was to be guaranteed the Captaincy of East Hellas by the Ot- toman Government. As an open traitor, however, his career was not of long duration. In April 1825, Gouras returned to East Hellas, and attacked his for- mer chief and a body of Turks under Abbas Pasha, at Daulis. Odysseus and his allies were defeated, and driven to Cheroneia. Deserted by his followers, and distrusted by the Turks, the power of Odysseus was now completely broken; and, on the 25th of April, he was compelled to surrender at discretion to his for- mer lieutenant.^ He had declared himself the enemy not only of the Government, but of Greece, and he could have little hope of mercy. A convicted traitor, iMendelssohn, i. 331. 150 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE stained with innumerable crimes, his death by process of law might have been regarded as an act of stern justice. As it was, he was imprisoned in the Acropolis for several months, and finally, on the 16th of July, murdered there by Gouras, who had succeeded to the place forfeited by his treason.^ At the beginning of the year 1825, then, the Government of Konduriottes and Kolettes was every- where victorious. Supported by the islands, by Euro- pean opinion, and by the Phanariot Greeks, it was now at the height of its power; all resistance to its author- ity was broken ; and it seemed as though Greece were at last to be united imder a powerful administration. But, meanwhile, a storm had been gathering over Hel- las from without, which, when it burst, would have shattered to its foundations a far more substantial edi- fice of power than this Government of selfish factions. 1 Finlay, ii. 94. In view of the growing unpopnlarity of the Government of Konduriottes, Gouras was afraid lest Odysseus should escape and regain his power. This, and not the satisfaction of justice, was the motive of the mur- der. CHAPTER IX Sultan Mahmoud appeals to Mehemet Ali of Egypt for aid — Insurrection in Crete — Hussein Bey pacifies Crete — Preparations of Mehemet Ali for the invasion of the Morea — Destruction of Kasos — Ibrahim sails to Rhodes — He celebrates the feast of Bairam in the Bay of ^fakry — Destruction of Psara by Khosrew Pasha — Turkish at- tack on Samos repulsed — Naval engag-ements of Bud- run — Victory of Miaoulis off Crete — Mutinous conduct of the Hydriot seamen — Ibrahim reaches Suda While the Greeks were finding an ally in the Phil- hellenic sentiment of Europe, Sultan Mahmoud sought aid in another direction. With the keenness of view that characterised him, he had studied the causes of the failure of the Ottoman arms, and determined on a new plan of action. To master the insurrection he realised the absolute necessity for obtaining the com- mand of the sea, and of opposing the untrained valour of the Greeks with the discipline of drilled troops; but all attempts to ref oriu the Ottoman army had hitherto failed, owing to the fierce opposition of the Janissaries to any interference with their privileges and immuni- 151 152 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ties; and the Turkish navv, owing to the causes men- tioned elsewhere, had not proved itself efficient in war, though it was now in a far better condition than at the outbreak of the revolt, and doubtless in time the vastly greater resources of the Ottoman empire might have worn out the naval power of Greece. Under these circumstances, the Sultan's thoughts turned to his vassal Mehemet Ali, Pasha of Egypt; and to him he determined to apply for aid. This remark- able man, who had raised himself from the lowest ranks ot the people to sovereign power, was already plotting those vast schemes of ambition which subse- quently brought him into collision with the Ottoman Empire; and, in preparation for these, he had organ- ised an army on the European model, and a magnifi- cently appointed fleet. The Sultan, fully awake to the importance of modern methods in warfare, had viewed these preparations of his powerful vassal with considerable misgiving; and, in proposing to him to help in the suppression of the Greek revolt, he doubt- less hoped to serve a twofold object, in using the in- strument which seemed the most effective for his im- mediate purpose, and at the same time, perhaps, blunt- ing a weapon which he suspected would, sooner or later, be directed against himself. He, therefore, now proposed to Mehemet Ali to use these newly disci- INSURRECTION IN CRETE 153 plined forces for the suppression of the Greek rebel- lion, and promised, in return, to hand over to him the Island of Crete, and to invest his son Ibrahim with the Pashalik of the Morea. Mehemet, whose plans of wider ambition were not yet ripe, and who still main- tained towards his suzerain the attitude of a loyal and dutiful subject, was nothing loth to respond to an ap- peal which was so flattering to his pride, and so preg- nant with future possibilities; and the bargain was soon concluded. Crete, the price of his interference, was the first to feel the weight of Mehemet All's power. The in- surrection in the island had, so far, been singularly successful. At Therison, at Crepa, and at Haliarkae the insurgents had been victorious; the Mussulmans had been swept from the hills and the open country, and confined to the three coast towns. But success had been followed by the customary quarrels between the victors. The hillsmen fought with the lowlanders ; and both combined to resist the authority of the Rus- sian Af entulis, who had been sent as his representative by Demetrius Hypsilanti. In E^ovember 1822, the Hydriot Tombazes arrived, and replaced Af entulis; but the quarrels continued, and the short intervals of peace were spent in empty discussions on abstract questions of constitutional government. 154 THE TVAE OP GREEK INDEPENDENCE While the Cretans were wasting their time in quarrelling and oratory, Mehemet Ali was making vigorous preparations for taking possession of his new province. In June 1823, his son-in-law, Hussein Bey Djeritli, landed at Suda; and forthwith the ^ pacifica- tion ' of the island began. Against the disciplined Egyptian troops the guerilla warriors of Crete were powerless. Step by step, the island was reduced, with admirable method, and barbarous cruelty; and the Cretans, defeated in the open and driven from their villages, sought refuge in their mountain caves. But even here they were not safe. In the cave of Melato 2,000 souls had sought refuge; and of these thirty men capable of bearing arms and all the old women were slain ; the rest were sold into slavery. Still more ghastly was the tragedy of the Grotto of Melidoni, whither some 370 souls had fled for safety. The nar- row entrance of the cave was held by armed men, and all the efforts of the Arabs to storm it failed. At last the discovery of a hole in the roof of the grotto in- spired the latter with a brilliant idea for reducing the garrison. They now proceeded to block up the en- trance to the cave, and, when this was accomplished, thrust masses of burning material through the hole in the roof. The wretched defenders fled from point to point of their place of refuge, now become a dread- HUSSEIN REDUCES CRETE 155 ful death trap, to escape from tlie advancing horror of suffocating smoke; but every outlet had been care- fully closed, and when, after a certain time, the xirabs entered the cave, not a soul of all the defenders was left alive.^ By April 1824, the severe measures of Hussein had succeeded in reducing the island to submission; and only in some of the remoter mountain fastnesses, which had, like the Maina, ever defied the Ottoman power, did a few bands of the Cretans still assert their independence. Tornbazes, with a crowd of refugees, was taken off by a squadron of Hydriot ships. Hus- sein, the object of his cruelty being accomplished, ex- changed it for a politic clemency, and, while disarm- ing the people, issued a general pardon, and attempted to reconcile the Cretans to the Egyptian rule by a con- siderable remission of taxation. Crete being thus in the hands of the Egyptians, Mehemet Ali determined to make it the base of the expedition which, under his son Ibrahim Pasha, he was now preparing against the Morea. For months 1 The Cretan * Christians ' appear to have used this inci- dent as a precedent during" the recent massacres at Sitia, when many ^Moslems, who had taken refug-e in a cave, were killed just in the same way. See * Side Lights on the Cretan Insurrection,' by Mr. Ernest Bennett, Nineteenth Century for May 1897. 166 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE past the dockyards and arsenal of Alexandria liad been tlie scene of extraordinary activity; and, by the beginning of June, one of the most magnificent fleets that had ever been seen in the Mediterranean was assembled in the port; while, outside the town, an army of 15,000 disciplined troops was encamped, in readiness to sail for the suppression of the infidel revolt. Before the transports were ready to embark the troops, the impatience of Mehemet caused him to fit out a squadron for the purpose of striking a blow at the Greek islanders. Three frigates and ten corvettes, commanded by Ismail Djebel Akhdar, and carrying 3,000 Albanian troops under Hussein Bey, were or- dered to sail against the island of Kasos, a nest of pirates, which had earned a peculiarly evil reputation in the Archipelago. The ruthless cruelty of the Kasi- ots was remarkable even among the barbarous corsairs of the ^gean, and to their sinister activity was as- cribed the disappearance of numberless merchantmen on the high seas.^ Believing themselves safe from all attack on their seagirt fortress — a barren rock some three leagues in length, and surrounded on all sides by inaccessible cliffs — the Kasiots had made no ade- quate preparations for defence; and had even carried 1 Jurien de la Graviere, Station du Levant, i. 269. DESTRUCTION OF KASOS 157 tlieir negligence so far as not to take tlie slightest pre- caution against being surprised. During the night of the 19th of June, therefore, Hussein had no difficulty in landing a strong body of his Albanians on the west coast of the island; and the hardy mountaineers scrambled with ease up the precipitous crags, and oc- cupied the heights of the island. The Kasiots, com- pletely taken by surprise, and scattered in four vil- lages, could make no effective resistance. The slaugh- ter began at midnight, and lasted till dawn. Every man capable of bearing arms was mercilessly cut down ; the young women and children were embarked the same morning for Egypt; and the slave markets of Alexandria were glutted with human wares whose plastic beauty, moulded by the sun and the pure air of the southern seas, gave them a high value as com- modities. Besides thousands of slaves, the Arabs capt- ured large quantities of stores, the accumulated pro- ceeds of piracy, and fifteen armed and forty unarmed vessels. The neighbouring islands also, terrified by to signal an example, now sent in their submission. Meanwhile the preparations of Mehemet Ali had been completed, and on the same day, the 19th of June, that Hussein landed in Kasos, the fleet of Ibrahim sailed from Alexandria. Seldom had a more imposing armada been borne upon the waters of the 158 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Mediterranean. Two hundred ships of war and trans- ports, carrying 18,000 men, followed the flagship of Ibrahim to sea. The whole sea between Alexandria and Khodes was now covered with scattered ships; for the prevailing north winds compelled the Egyptians to beat up the coast in detached squadrons; and had the Greeks been animated with the spirit of our own Drakes and Frobishers, their light sailing cruisers J might have done, under these conditions, endless havoc " among the hostile fleet. As long, however, as the dan- ger was not actually at their doors, they were too busy 1 with their own quarrels to pay much attention to the proceedings of the enemy; and Ibrahim had no diffi- culty in uniting his scattered fleet at Rhodes. The Egyptian commander-in-chief cast anchor in the Bay of Makry, where he proceeded to celebrate the great Mohammedan festival of Bairam with ex- ceptional solemnity, so as to impress upon the sol- diers the religious character of the enterprise on which they were about to embark. The whole army was drawn up along the shore of the bay; and, as the red rim of the sun disappeared beneath the horizon, col- oured lanterns were hoisted at every masthead, and the guns of the fleet thundered out a salute, while volley after volley of musketry re-echoed from the hills. Then there fell a sudden silence, and, as the DESTRUCTION OF PSARA 159 smoke clouds cleared away, the warriors of Islam saw the crescent moon floating, surrounded by glittering stars, in the darkening vault of the sky. From twenty tliousand throats a mighty shout went up; and to the simple faith of the Arab soldiers it seemed as though Allah himself had set his seal upon their enterprise. While Ibrahim was confirming the courage and enthusiasm of his troops by this effective coup de the- at re, the Ottoman fleet, under Khosrew Pasha, had been unusually active, and on the 2nd of July struck a blow which at last awakened the Greeks to some sense of their danger. Of all the zEgeau islands, none had been more energetic and active in carrying on the war than the little rock of Psara. The courage and, it may be added, the cruelty of the Psariot seamen had rendered them peculiarly obnoxious to the Turks; the Mussulmans of the Asiatic seaboard especially, whose fields they had harried, and whose towns they had burned for years past, hating them with a perfect hate.^ Their Greek neighbours also had suffered not a little from their meddlesome pride and overbearing conduct; yet, on the whole, no Hellenic community had deserved better of its country, or taken a bolder part in its liberation, than Psara; and its destruction was felt to be a national disaster of the first order. 1 Gordon, ii. G7. 160 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE The continued successes of their vessels at sea had filled the Psariots with an overweening belief in their own prowess, and a corresponding contempt for the Turks, which was to cost them dear. It never entered their heads to take any effective measures for guarding their island against the attacks of so despicable a foe ; and they boasted that, if the whole power of the Capi- tan Pasha were to land upon the island, they could easily sweep it into the sea. Their boast was soon to be put to the proof. On the 2nd of July, Khosrew Pasha, favoured by a sudden change of wind, which disguised his move- ments from the enemy, succeeded in landing a strong force on the northern side of the island, where the coast was apparently so inaccessible that it had been thought unnecessary to protect it by more than a weak battery. Completely surprised, this was carried at the first rush; and the Albanians proceeded to climb the precipitous sides of the mountains, and in due course reached the heights looking down on the town of Psara, and commanding the rear of the Psariot bat- teries. On the opposite side of the island, meanwhile, Khosrew with the Ottoman fleet had attacked the town and the ships in the harbour. Surprised and out- flanked, the Psariots made a desperate resistance ; but their batteries were ill placed, they themselves little KHOSREW ATTACKS SAM08 161 accustomed to fighting on land, and quite incapable of effective combination. Only a few succeeded in reaching the vessels in the harbour, and making their escape ; the majority were put to the sword. A small band, under Dimitri Prazano, retreated to the fort of Palseocastro, and defended it till further resistance was hopeless; they then received the communion, and as the Turks swarmed over the defences, the Greek leader fired his pistol into the powder magazine, and buried the defenders and some 2,000 of the enemy under the ruins of the fort.^ The news of the destruction of Psara spread dis- may among the Greeks, and, for the time, inspired the selfish Government at Nauplia with some energy against the common enemy. It was now that the Lord Commissioner of the Ionian Islands allowed the first instalment of the loan to be handed over to the Greek Government; and this, as has already been men- tioned,^ was used in fitting out a squadron of ships in the harbours of Hydra and Spezzia. With these Miaoulis now sailed to Psara, and destroyed the ves- sels which Khosrew had left to hold the place. The return of the Ottoman fleet, however, compelled him to retire; and the island remained, for the time, in the hands of the Turks. It never again recovered its 1 Prokesch, i. 290. 2 See p. 146. 11 162 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE former prosperity; and the activity of the surviving Psariots was more than ever directed to piracy pure and simple. Encouraged by his success against Psara, Khos- rew next decided to attempt the reduction of the im- portant island of Samos, which had long acted as a breakwater against the tide of Ottoman conquest. But the Greeks, warned by the catastrophe of Psara, were now thoroughly on the alert; and a strong squadron, under Miaoulis and Sachtouris, cruised night and day round the island. On the 14:th of August, Miaoulis had gone on a hasty cruise to watch the Egyptian fleet at Rhodes, and, in his absence, Khosrew appeared off the southern point of Samos; at the same time, a fleet of forty transports, carrying 4,000 men, started from the mainland to try and effect a landing on the island. They were, however, attacked by the Greek squadron under Sachtouris, who, having the advantage of the weather -gage, succeeded in sinking two of the trans- ports, capturing two, and compelling the rest to retire. A second attempt of the Turks to cross the strait also failed; and on the 16th and 17th of August, the ar- rival of one Psariot and nine Spezziot ships enabled the Greek admiral to attack the Ottoman fleet with success. As usual, the Greeks relied mainly on their fire-ships; and Kanaris succeeded in burning a Turk- KHOSREW JOINS IBRAHIM AT BUDRUN 163 ish frigate of fifty-four guns. Two others were like- wise destroyed in the same way; and 2,000 of the enemy perished. Discouraged by these losses, Khos- rew gave up the idea of reducing Samos, and sailed away to effect a junction with Ibrahim, which he ef- fected, on the 1st of September, off Budrun.* The united Turkish and Egyptian fleets should now have been able with ease to sweep the Greeks from the open sea. Besides the battle-ship of seventy- four guns, bearing the flag of Khosrew, there were twenty frigates, twenty-five corvettes, and forty brigs and schooners, with nearly 300 transports of all sizes and shapes. The Ottoman fleet, moreover, though still far from being in good order, had very greatly improved since the beginning of the war. But the re- lations between Ibrahim and the Capitan Pasha were by no means cordial ; the Egyptian prince resented the authoritative attitude which Khosrew's technical su- periority of rank entitled him to assume; and he no- ticed with suspicion and contempt that, when it came to action, the Egyptians were allowed to bear the brunt of the fighting, while the Ottoman admiral al- ways discovered some pretext for remaining at a dis- creet distance from the danger. Even when the Turks 1 Prokesch, i. 298. 164 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE did go into action, the practice of their gunners was so bad that the Greeks received very little damage.^ The Egyptian and Turkish fleets being now united, the object of the allies was to convoy their great fleet of transports safely to Crete ; and no effort of courage or patience on the part of the Greeks should have been spared to prevent the success of this enterprise. On the 5th of September, a Greek fleet of between sev- enty and eighty sail^ under Miaoulis, appeared in the channel between Kos and the island of Kappari; and the Ottoman fleet stood out to engage it. All day the battle raged, with great violence, but very little result. In the end, such advantage as there was lay with the Ottomans, though, beyond the loss of a couple of fire- ships by the Greeks, neither side had suffered appre- ciably during the whole day's cannonade.^ The Greeks, however, noticed with dismay that their fire- 1 Finlay, ii. 56, ib. 70. Lord Byron said, * These Turks, with so many g'uns, would be dang-erous enemies, if they should happen to fire without taking- aim.' 2 The Turks seem to have suffered more from their own bad seamanship than from the Greeks. ' Their principal care was to avoid running- foul of each other, which, never- theless, they continually did.' ' They had few killed or wounded, but many of their ships were disabled by mutual collision.' Gordon, ii. 153, 154. The English blue-jackets used to say that the Ottoman fleet was * adrift in the Archi- pelago.' NAVAL ENGAGEMENTS OFF BUDRUN 165 ships had fewer terrors for the well-trained Egyptian seamen than for the ill-disciplined Turks. Where the latter had fallen into panic and confusion at the ap- proach of the dreaded engines of destruction, the Egyptians simply manoeuvred out of their way, and allowed them to drift harmlessly to leeward ; or, if by chance they succeeded in attaching themselves, cut them adrift before they could do any damage. From this time forward, the superiority at sea which the Greeks had owed to their skill in this particular form of warfare began to decline; and such successes as they gained later in the war were due more often to their possession of the steamer Karteria,, purchased on the advice of the Philhellene Captain Hastings, and to their use of heavy ordnance and charges of red-hot shot. On the 10th of September, the Ottoman fleet again stood out from Budrun, and a battle followed in which the Greeks obtained slightly the advantage. A Turk- ish frigate and a corvette were destroyed by fire-ships ; and these losses so terrified the Turks, that they hauled off, and both fleets returned to their former anchor- ages. The Greeks, however, though they had in- flicted considerable loss upon the enemy, had only done so at great cost to themselves; for some of their own vessels had been destroyed, and many fire-ships had been sacrificed in vain. Their success, therefore, 166 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE was scarce marked enough to dissipate the sense of discouragement which had seized them after the battle of the 5th. A renewed effort of Khosrew to reach Samos met with but very ineffective resistance on their part; and its success was only prevented by a storm which dispersed the Turkish fleet. The Capitan Pasha thereupon retired once more into the Dardanelles; and only a few Turkish vessels remained with the fleet of Ibrahim. Early in IN^ovember, Ibrahim again made an at- tempt to reach Suda, where a considerable force, trans- ported direct from Alexandria, had already collected. On the 13th, however, as his fleet, convoying the transports, was approaching Crete, Miaoulis with a Greek squadron bore down upon them. The Egyptian captains had neglected to keep, in accordance with their orders, to windward of the transports, which were sailing far in advance of the ships of war. Miaoulis was therefore able to attack them before the warships could come to the rescue. Several were destroyed, several captured, and the rest so completely dispersed that some of them even returned to Alexandria. A Turkish frigate also nearly fell into the hands of the Greeks; and, surrounded by five or six Hydriot brigs, it only escaped owing to the invincible objection of the Greeks to coming to close quarters with the enemy. VICTORY OF MIAOULIS OFF CRETE 167 The next day at dawn, Ibrahim, seeing the necessity for once more postponing his enterprise, collected the remnants of his convoy under the shelter of Scarpanto, and two days later cast anchor in the deep Bay of Mar- morice, on the west coast of Rhodes. The Greeks now thought that, the season being far advanced, Ibrahim would give up, for the present, all idea of reaching Crete. The pay of the Hydriot sea- men was a month or two in arrear, and they were eager to return home and enjoy some of the fruits of their victory. Miaoulis, inspired by a clearer perception of the threatened danger to Hellas, and by a purer patriot- ism, was anxious not to lose sight of the Egyptian fle^t even now; and he besought his mutinous seamen, by their love of country, by their faith, by the shades of their ancestors, and by their good name among pos- terity, not to abandon their task. His prayers and entreaties fell on deaf ears. The Hydriot seamen wanted neither glory nor the blessings of posterity, but their arrears of pay; they were not slaves or Turks to work for nothing. The Egyptians had been swept from the sea ; let them now have their money, or they would return to their islands, orders or no orders. Miaoulis was obliged to yield; and the Greek fleet sailed for E'auplia, leaving the sea unguarded.^ 1 Cf. Lemaitre, 169. 168 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE The Greeks had not yet realised the character of the enemy they had now to deal with, nor had ex- perience of Ibrahim's dogged tenacity of purpose; or they would never have dreamed themselves safe as long as the Egyptian fleet was not utterly destroyed. As it was, on the 5th of December, Ibrahim again set sail, and this time reached Suda without falling in with a single Greek ship. A couple of months were now spent by the Egyp- tian commander in making elaborate preparations for the invasion of the Morea; and to the European offi- cers of the staff he remarked that, having outmanoeu- vred the Greeks at sea, he should meet with little diffi- culty in crushing them on land.^ When he had em- barked at Alexandria, he had sworn never to set foot on dry land before reaching the Morea; and now European travellers saw him seated upon his quarter- deck, cooling his rage and impatience on his unhappy subordinates with kicks, blows, and bullets.^ At last all was prepared; and on February 24, 1825, he landed at Modon, at the extreme southern point of the Peloponnese, with an army of 4,000 regular infantry, and 500 cavalry. The transports were sent back to Crete; and soon afterwards, without meeting with iFinlay, ii. 62. 2 Mendelssohn, i. 352. IBRAHIM LANDS IN THE MOREA 169 any opposition from the Greeks, they brought over a second force of 6,000 infantry and 500 cavalry, be- sides artillery. The tide of war had turned against the Greeks. CHAPTEE X Ibrahim lands in the Morea — Neg-lect of the Greeks — ^Defeat of the Greeks at Krommydi — Siege of Navarino — Hus- sein Bey captures Sphakteria — Surrender of Pylos and Navarino — Kolokotrones released and made commander- in-chief — Heroic stand of Dikaios at Maniaki — Ibrahim advances on Tripolitza — His check at the Mills of Lema — He devastates the Morea — Desperate condition of the Greeks The Greeks were far from realising the full import of Ibrahim's invasion. Their success against the Turks had given them an overweening confidence in their own prowess; while the misfortunes of such trained battalions as they had possessed had filled them with contempt for regular troops. After the disastrous battle of Peta every semblance of military discipline had vanished from their forces in the field; and now they boasted loudly that the Arabs would run away at the mere sight of the bold Armatoli, who had al- ways been victorious over the Sultan's armies. Of effective military preparation, even on their own ir- 170 CAMPAIGN OF KONDURIOTTES 171 regular lines, there was none. The English loans, or such part of them as had not *been spent in buying rotten hulks from the Hydriot shipowners for the use of the navy, or embezzled by the members of the Gov- ernment, had been squandered in maintaining a host of greedy adventurers, whose only title to be consid- ered soldiers lay in the fact that they swags^ered about in the streets of Nauplia, resplendent in gold-embroid- ered Albanian costumes and silver-mounted arms. Even so, of the 30,000 soldiers whom the Government had in its pay, only some 8,000 could be mustered when at last the President, Konduriottes, determined to march against the invader. The brief career of Konduriottes as a general is strongly reminiscent of comic opera. ^ As he passed under the lofty arched gateway of E'auplia on the 28th of March, the cannon from the ramparts and from the fortress above pealed out their loud salutations, and were answered by the batteries on the shore and the shipping in the harbour.' ^ He was habited with bar- baric magnificence, and followed by a long train of secretaries, guards, grooms, and pipe-bearers; but the dignity of his appearance was somewhat compromised by the fact that, as an islander, he was unaccustomed 1 Historical Sketch of the Greek Revolution, by Dr. S. G. Home, who was present at this scene (p. 226). 172 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE to riding, and had therefore to be held on his mettled charger by a groom on either side. The campaign thus magnificently begun was not fruitful of great re- sults. The enemy being in the south, Konduriottes proceeded to march northward, until, at last, hearing that Ibrahim was besieging ^avarino, he turned, and, by a circuitous route, led his army back to — l!^auplia 1 Having thus earned sufficient military glory, he re- signed his command^ and appointed a Hydriot sea-cap- tain named Skourti commander of the land forces. Meanwhile Ibrahim had been proving himself a leader of a different stamp. 'No sooner were the troops landed than, without a moment's unnecessary delay, he advanced on ^avarino, and on the 21st of March opened the siege of this important fortress, as well as of the old castle of Pylos, which commanded the nar- row channel to the north of Sphakteria. A Greek army under Skourti now advanced to attempt the relief of these two places. It was com- posed of 7,000 men, the flower of the Hellenic forces, consisting of a band of Suliots under Djavellas and Constantine Botzares, of Eumeliot Armatoli under Karaiskakis, and a force of Albanians from the plain of Argolis under the immediate command of Skourti. There was, besides, a body of Bulgarian and Wallach irregular horse under Hadji Christos. This force was BATTLE OF KROMMYDI 173 attacked on the 19 th of April by Ibrahim with a de- tachment of 3,000 regular infantry, 400 cavalry, and four gims. The affair of Krommydi was the first serious en- counter between the Greeks and regular troops, and it resulted in an easy victory for the latter. The Greeks had established themselves, in a position se- lected by themselves, as usual, behind their shallow entrenchments ; and these Ibrahim, after a brief recon- noissance, ordered his Arab infantry to storm at the point of the bayonet. The regulars, for the most part mere raw recruits, advanced up the slope towards the Greek entrenchments without wavering, though many fell. When they approached the enemy, their officers ordered them to advance at the double, and led them cheering to the attack. The veteran warriors of Greece, skilled in all the arts of irregular warfare, were unable to stand against the onset of disciplined battalions. With scarce a moment's resistance they fled, leaving 600 dead upon the field. Ibrahim was now free to push the siege of ISTava- rino and Pylos, without fear of further interruption from the Greeks on land. Shortly after the battle of Krommydi, Hussein Bey, the conqueror of Crete, ar- rived in the Egyptian camp; and his keen judgment at once noticed the defects in Ibrahim's dispositions. 174 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Without having read Thucydides, or knowing any- thing of the immortal struggle between the Spartans and Athenians for the possession of the island, he realised that Sphakteria was the key of ISTavarino, and that the possession of this would involve in the end that of the fortress; and on his pointing this out to Ibrahim, the Egyptian commander ordered him to take possession of the island. The Greeks, too, had realised, though late, the extreme importance of this position, had hastily occupied it with a few hundred troops, and erected a couple of weak batteries. They had, however, forgotten, what the Spartans had learned to their cost two thousand years before, that Sphak- teria could only be held by the Power commanding the sea. The Greek fleet had, as usual, been delayed by the selfishness and insubordination of the Hydriot seamen, and in the harbour were only five brigs; and when, therefore, on the 8th of May, the Egyptian fleet of ninety sail entered the bay, all hope was lost of holding Sphakteria or saving Navarino. Under cover of a heavy cannonade from the Egyp- tian ships, Hussein landed, with a regiment of Arab regulars and Moreot Mussulmans, on the southern point of the island, and at once advanced to the assault of the Greek entrenchments. Again the Greeks fled, almost without striking a blow, before the Arab bay- FALL OF PYLOS AND NAVARINO 175 onets; and only the brave Hydriot captain Tsamma- dos, with two or three others, among whom was the gallant Piedmontese exile Santa Rosa, died at their posts. Of the others, Mavrocordatos and Sachtouris, the governor of !Navarino, succeeded in escaping on board a Greek vessel. Some 200 Greeks were taken prisoners, and about 350 slain, amongst the latter be- ing the Klepht Anagnostaras. Scarcely three days after the occupation of Sphak- teria by the Egyptians, Pylos capitulated; and the 800 men of the garrison were allowed to depart, after laying down their arms. Ibrahim now also offered honourable terms to the garrison of ISTavarino, and in spite of the strenuous opposition of George Mavro- michales, afterwards the assassin of Capodistrias, the unexpected clemency of the Egyptian commander to the garrison of Pylos had its due effect, and the Ru- meliot Armatoli insisted on the surrender of the place. In view of the hideous scenes which had been enacted at J^avarino a few years before, the Greeks may well have had some doubt as to whether the capitulation would, in their case, be strictly observed. Among the crowd, through which they would have to pass on their way to the ships on which they were to be em- barked, were the fathers, husbands, and brothers of the unfortunate Mussulmans who had been massacred and 176 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE outraged by them, or their co-religionists, four years before; and their own evil conscience inspired them with terrors which proved to be groundless. The pres- ence of Ibrahim's regular troops insured the terms of the capitulation being observed; the soldiers of the garrison were marched down to the quay, surrounded by a strong escort of cavalry, and thence transferred to Kalamata in neutral ships, escorted by a French and an Austrian man-of-war. When all was over, a Greek squadron under Mi- aoulis at last appeared upon the scene; and, seeing that he was too late to save l^avarino, the Hydriot admiral proceeded to Modon, where he siicceeded in destroying with fire-ships several of the Egyptian ves- sels in the harbour, including the fine frigate Asia, and also in burning a considerable quantity of stores; but this success of the Greeks had no effect in delay- ing Ibrahim's movements. Hitherto the vanity and overweening self-confi- dence of the Greeks at the centre of government had been fed by false reports of victories, and bombastic promises of the speedy expulsion of the Egyptians from the Morea. The fall of so important a fortress as ]N"avarino, however, was a misfortune which not even the most plausible Levantine could interpret as a success; and the arrival of the news at RECALL OF KOLOKOTRONES 177 Nauplia was followed by a wild outburst of rage and alarm. The incapacity of Konduriottes was violently denounced; and the primates and chiefs clamoured for the recall of Kolokotrones, as the only leader ca- pable of organising an effective resistance to the in- vader. Konduriottes was compelled to yield; for the Rumeliot Armatoli, upon whose support his power had mainly rested, had now been drawn from the Morea by the report of Reshid Pasha's advance into West Hellas. The Archimandrite Dikaios (Pappa Phlesas) also, who was now Minister of the Interior, joined in the popular outcry, and in the meantime asked that he himself should be allowed to march against the enemy, the recall of Kolokotrones to be the reward of victory. The harassed Government was not unwill- ing to let the turbulent ecclesiastic go; in the same spirit as that in which the Athenians had once allowed Cleon to have a command, in the hope that they would thus rid themselves either of the enemy or of their general. With a body of 3,000 troops, Dikaios marched southward, and at Maniaki, on a spur of Mount Malia, took up a position commanding a view of the plain towards J^avarino, and there awaited the arrival of the Egyptians. Presently the plain below them seemed to be covered with marching battalions; and, 13 178 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE when the Greeks saw an apparently innumerable host advancing upon them with a steadiness and fateful deliberation as disconcerting as it was strange to their experience, many of them lost com*age and fled. About a thousand, however, held their ground; and Dikaios stimulated their courage with the elo- quence which had made him so great a power in the revolt. Victory was always possible, he cried, but if they fell, many Turks would also bite the dust, and this battle would be as famous among posterity as the immortal stand of Leonidas and his three hundred Spartans. For once, courageous words were followed by courageous deeds. The Arabs advanced to the attack; but the Greeks held their ill-constructed en- trenchments with obstinate valour. At last, however, the discipline and numbers of the enemy prevailed; but not before 800 of the Greeks and 400 Mussulmans had fallen. Dikaios himself fought like a lion; and the headless trunk of the burly priest was discovered surrounded by piles of slain Arabs. Ibrahim caused the head to be sought; and, when it was found, had it set upon the trunk, and the figure of the dead leader placed upright against a post. For a while he stood silently regarding it ; then at last he said, ^ That was a brave and honourable man ! Better have spent twice as many lives to have saved his; he would have served IBRAHIM TAKES TRIPOLITZA 179 US well! ' Such was the heroic end of one who had hitherto been mainly known as a dissolute priest and a dishonest politician.^ This exploit of Dikaios revived the drooping cour- age of the Greeks; and when Kolokotrones, raised from his prison to the supreme command, took the field, he made his dispositions with a certain confidence. But in generalship he was no match for Ibrahim. The rapid movements of the Egyptians bewildered those who had been accustomed to the dilatory methods of Turkish warfare. Kolokotrones had occupied the pass of Makryplagi, to bar the road to Tripolitza; but Ibrahim outflanked him, advanced on the town, and took it, without meeting with any serious opposition. He hoped from this base, by a rapid movement, to secure Kauplia, before it could be put into a state of defence; but at the mills of Lerna, which were occu- pied by some 250 Greeks, under Makriyanni, Constan- tine Mavromichales, and Hypsilanti, he met with so stout a resistance, that he realised the impossibility of seizing ^NTauplia without a regular siege; and, as at the present moment he was not prepared to undertake I this, he returned to Tripolitza. I Kolokotrones now hoped to repeat in the case of Ibrahim the strategy which he had once employed so 1 Mendelssohn, i. 357. 180 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE successfully against Dramali, and, by occupying tlie mountain passes, to blockade the Egyptians in Tripo- litza, and starve tbem into surrender. But Ibrahim was awake to this danger; and, on the 6th of July, he anticipated the designs of Kolokotrones by making a simultaneous attack on all his positions, and forcing him to retire. The mills of Daria, Zerekovia, and Piana, which the Greeks had neglected to fortify, fell into his hands; and the Egyptian army was secured plentiful supplies. The war, from this point, ceased to have the char- acter of a contest between equal forces. Ibrahim, using Tripolitza as his base, crossed and recrossed the country, harrying and devastating; and it seemed as though his deliberate policy were to destroy by famine and disease the remnant of the population which the sword had spared, in order that the Morea, cleared of its inhabitants, might be repeopled by Mo- hammedan negroes and fellaheen. The Greeks, ut- terly discouraged, no longer ventured to meet the enemy in the open, but carried on a guerilla warfare, cutting off his supplies, and harassing his march. For effective aid Hellas could look no longer to her own children, but turned despairing eyes abroad. Such was the desperate state of the fortunes of Greece, when Mehemet Ali sent orders to Ibrahim, who on Septem- IBRAHIM ORDERED TO MISSOLONGHI 181 ber 30, 1825, had gone into winter quarters at Mo- don, to advance to the assistance of Reshid Pasha, who for eight months had been in vain besieging Mis- solonghi. CHAPTEK XI THE SIEGE OF MISSOLONGHI Keshid * Kiutayeh ' invades West Hellas — ^He opens the siege of Missolonghi — State of the defences — Arrival of Khosrew with the Ottoman fleet — Turkish assaults re- pulsed — Desperate straits of the garrison — Greek fleet under Miaoulis defeats Khosrew^, and relieves the town — Critical position of Eeshid — Ibrahim arrives before Missolonghi — Miaoulis again relieves the town — Assault of Arab guards repulsed — Fall of Fort Vasiladi — Capitu- lation of Anatoliko — Kepulse of Turks and Arabs from the islet of Klissova — Attempt of Miaoulis to revictual the town defeated — Sortie of the garrison — Sack of the town, and massacre of the inhabitants — Effect on Europe. The defence of Missolonghi must always rank as one of the most heroic and soul-stirring episodes, not only in the war of Greek independence, but in all his- tory. It seemed as though Greek patriotism, flying from the selfishness, the intrigues, and civil broils which elsewhere disgraced the cause of freedom, had concentrated itself in this little city of the lagoons, where a garrison of peasants, burghers, and simple 183 RESIIID INVESTS MISS0L0NC4ni 183 fishermen defied for months the whole power of the Ottoman Empire. Sultan Mahmoud remembered with bitterness the failure of his troops before Missolonghi three years before. He determined now to make another attempt to reduce the stubborn rebels; and to make sure that this time there should be no failure, he entrusted the task to Reshid ^ Kiutayeh/ Pasha of Janina, who had commanded the Ottoman army at the battle of Peta, and who was at once an able general and a man of singular determination of character. At the same time he thought it expedient to warn him that either Missolonghi or his head must fall. Reshid set about the task with great thorough- ness. The wild Albanian tribes were won over by the usual presents; and on the 6th of April he led an army of twenty thousand men through the pass of Makrynoros, the Thermopylae of Western Hellas, which the Greeks had, as usual, left undefended. On the 27th of April he reached Missolonghi, and on the 7th of May formally commenced the siege by opening the first parallel. The town was now in a far better state of defence than during the former investment. The earth wall had, mainly owing to the exertions of Lord Byron, been strengthened by a couple of bastions and other defen- 184 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE sive works. A covered gallery had been constructed outside tlie ditch, and, flanking the wall, in the lagoon the island of Marmora had been fortified. At the out- set, moreover, the besieged were much better provided with artillery than the besiegers. Reshid, indeed, in this respect was so badly oif that he had at first to trust mainly to the spade, and gradually advance his parallels nearer the walls. The garrison of the town consisted of four thou- sand men, under some of the best captains in Greece ; but there were in addition to these some twelve thou- sand non-combatants, who formed a serious drain on the resources of the besieged. The veteran Notaris Botzares commanded the forces of the defence; the heroic Papadiamantopulos, a Moreot primate, presided over the civil government of the town. In June Reshid received some reinforcements of artillery, but was prevented from pressing the siege with proportionate vigour owing to lack of ammuni- tion. The supply of bombs having run out, the mor- tars were reduced to hurling rocks; and the practice of the gunners was, moreover, so bad that very little damage was done. An attack on the island of Marmora was repulsed. On the 10th of June, a squadron of seven Hydriot ships sailed into the harbour, bring- ing plentiful supplies, some reinforcements from the OTTOMAN ASSAULT REPULSED 185 Morea, and promising the speedy arrival of further succour. A month later the Greek watchman reported a fleet in the offing, and the hard-pressed Missolonghi- ots thought that the promised relief had arrived. Their joy was, however, premature; for the fleet turned out to be that of Khosrew Pasha, who brought Eeshid much-needed supplies, and, above all, large stores of ammunition. At the same time, Yussuf Pasha had sent from Patras a flotilla of flat-bottomed gun-boats for use in the shallow waters of the lagoons, and these Reshid now used to sieze the islets off the shore, and to invest the town by sea as well as by land. Every fresh advance of the besiegers, however, only seemed to raise to a higher pitch the courage and determination of the defence. The town was now exposed to a hail of shot and shell, which speedily re- duced it to a mass of ruins. On the 23rd of July a bombardment more violent than usual seemed to herald a general attack. On the 28th a mine exploded under the bastion Botzares, and the Turks advanced into the breach. Twice they planted the banner of the Crescent on the summit of the ruins, and twice they were hurled back into the ditch. For that day they gave up the attempt. On the 1st of August, and again on the following day, they renewed their efforts to storm the town, but 186 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE with no better success. Five Imndred of their number had fallen, and still Missolonghi seemed as far as ever from being taken. Eeshid vented his wrath on some unhappy prisoners, whom he caused to be taken before the walls and beheaded. In spite of their triumphant resistance, however, the position of the Missolonghiots seemed now to be desperate. The garrison was weakened by hunger, and, worse still, the supply of ammunition was all but exhausted. There were only two small kegs of powder left in the town, and, should Reshid return at once to the attack, the result could not be doubtful. At this critical moment the arrival of the Greek fleet, so long expected, was at last signalled. It ap- peared that the Ilydriot seamen had refused to sail without double pay in advance; and the timely arrival of a loan from England had alone revived their venal patriotism, and saved the Missolonghiots. On the 3rd of August the Greek fleet attacked that of Khosrew. For two hours the hostile squadrons ma- noeuvred to win the weather-gage. At last the Greeks got to windward, and sent down their fireships on the vessel of the Capitan Pasha. But Khosrew had a peculiar dislike to this form of warfare, which might prepare for him the fate that had befallen his pre- decessor, Kara Ali, at the hands of Kanaris. No MIAOULIS KAISES THE BLOCKADE 187 sooner did he see tlie hated craft bearing down upon him than, with his whole fleet, he stood out to sea, and, on pretence of forming a junction with the Egyp- tian fleet, never slackened sail until he reached Alex- andria. Nevertheless, with true Oriental compla- cency, he claimed the victory, on the plea that his ships had received no damage ! Keshid Pasha had, however, been abandoned to his fate; and, before Missolonghi, the tables were now completely turned. Admiral Miaoulis destroyed Yus- suf 's flotilla of gunboats, and threw a plentiful supply of ammunition and provisions into the town; while a sortie of the garrison, under Karaiskakis, succeeded in regaining the islets in the lagoons and destroying the Turkish works. The blockade was now completely raised; and the Greek fleet, leaving seven vessels to keep the command of the sea, sailed away in pursuit of Khosrew. Kiutayeh, without ammunition, without money, and with but little food, was now in an evil plight; yet his courage and determination never faltered. Fail- ing other means, he took again to the spade, and rolled an immense mound of earth against one of the bastions. The Greeks had hailed this primitive siege operation with shouts of derision; but it was so far successful that the bastion was taken, only, however, to be im- 188 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE mediately recaptured, and tlie labour of three weeks destroyed. On the 21st of September and the 13 th of October two vigorous sorties were made by the gar- rison. The troops were followed by crowds of the in- habitants with spades and pickaxes, who proceeded, while the soldiers drove back the Turks, to demolish the Ottoman earthworks. What the Greeks left un- finished the autumn rains completed, and Reshid saw the whole labour of the year destroyed. Under pres- ent conditions any further effort against the town was out of the question. By death and desertion his army was now reduced to some three thousand men; and it was necessary to wait for help. He determined, therefore, to withdraw from the immediate neighbour- hood of the town, which the malarial swamps rendered extremely unhealthy, and, entrenching himself at the foot of Mount Zygos, to act strictly on the defensive. The position of the Ottomans was now extremely critical, and nothing but the fatuousness of the Greeks saved them from utter ruin. In their rear the moun- tain passes were held by strong bands of Greek Arma- toli; in front was Missolonghi. Had the garrison of the latter combined with the mountaineers in a simul- taneous attack on the^Turkish camp, the Ottoman army would have been annihilated. But the chiefs of Arma- toli were too much occupied with their own quarrels; IBRAHIM BEFORE MISSOLONGHI 189 and the Missolongliiots were so well content with the success they had hitherto achieved that, so far from dreaming of any offensive action, they neglected even to reprovision the city, or make any arrangements for the future. Probably, too, they thought that the Turks, in accordance with their usual custom, would retire homeward before the winter. In this, however, they were greatly mistaken; for Reshid knew well that he must either conquer Misso- longhi or perish before the walls. On the 18th of !N'ovember the fleet of the Capitan Pasha returned, just in time to save the Turks from starvation; and the small Greek squadron being unable to hold its own against the Ottomans, they once more regained the command of the sea. At this juncture Ibrahim received orders to join Reshid before Missolonghi. With his accustomed promptness he advanced from ISTavarino by forced marches, crossed the important pass of Kleidi without encountering any opposition, and at Pyrgos and Gastuni seized the stores of corn which had been in- tended for Missolonghi. On the 27th of ^November he held a council of war with Reshid and Yussuf Pasha. Between Ibrahim and Kiutayeh there was no love lost. The mere presence of the Egyptian was a wound to Reshid's pride, and Ibrahim rubbed salt into 190 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE the sore. ' What ! ' lie cried, when he saw Missolonghi, ' were you kept out eight months by this fence ? Why, I took Kavarino in eight days ! ' ^ He boasted that, within a fortnight, he would reduce the town, with- out Reshid's assistance. Kiutayeh accepted the offer, and vented his ill-humour on some wretched Greek women and boys, whom he impaled, as spies, before the walls. The appearance of Ibrahim before Missolonghi threw the Greek Government into the greatest state of alarm. With the fate of the gallant Missolonghiots that of Greece seemed now to be inextricably involved, and it became urgently necessary to take measures to relieve the town; but the treasury was empty, and all attempts to float a new loan failed. It was proposed to sell the public lands, already pledged as security for the national debt; but the suggestion merely destroyed the last vestiges of the Government credit. Personal patriotism now came to the rescue, and by private subscription a sufficient sum was raised to enable Miaoulis to fit out a fleet for the relief of Missolonghi. On the 21st of January he arrived off the belea- guered town, and succeeded in landing some stores on the island of Yasiladi. Here, however, he was attacked by the combined Turkish and Egyptian fleets, and 1 Mendelssohn, i. 370. ARAB ASSAULT REPULSED 191 compelled to draw off. On the night of the 27th the Greeks succeeded in destroying with a fireship an Ottoman corvette. On the 28th a battle with the Turkish and Egyptian fleets resulted in a victory for the Greeks. Miaoulis was enabled to throw two months^ provisions into the town, before, at the be- ginning of February, he was compelled by the insub- ordination of the Hydriot seamen to sail home. Ibrahim, whose proceedings during the winter had been stopped by floods and rains, which made the marshes about the town impassable, now commenced operations in earnest. He determined flrst to attempt to take the place by assault, trusting that his drilled regiments might succeed where Reshid's undisciplined horde had failed. On the 25th of February a heavy cannonade began; and, for three days, a hail of iron descended on the devoted town. On the 2Sth the Egyptians advanced to the attack of the bastion Bot- zares. Three times the Arab guard gained a footing on the walls ; three times they recoiled before the furi- ous onslaught of the Greeks; and at midday the at- tempt was relinquished. Ibrahim was beside himself with rage. Reshid, not altogether displeased, asked him what he now thought of the * fence ' ! It was now determined to invest the place once more by sea, as well as by land. The selfishness of 192 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE the Hydriot sailors, who had refused to remain with- out pay in advance, had forced Miaoulis to leave the Turks in command of the sea. They now again pre- pared a flotilla of flat-bottomed boats, and proceeded to make a systematic attack on the islands of the lagoons. On the 9th of March, Fort Yasiladi fell. On the 21st, after a seven hours' fight, the Egyptians captured the sandbank of Dolma ; and thereupon the town of Anatoliko, which had so far shared the fort- unes of Missolonghi, capitulated. Its three thousand inhabitants were transported to Arta, in accordance with the terms of the capitulation. To Greek and Turk alike this seemed the begin- ning of the end ; and Ibrahim seized the opportunity to offer the Missolonghiots honourable terms. The gar- rison was to be allowed to withdraw, the inhabitants either to follow, or to remain undisturbed under the protection of the Sultan. But the undaunted defend- ers were determined to hold out. What the future had in store for them or their foes, they answered, God only knew; but of terms they would have none, and were determined to live, or die, free.^ 1 Cf. Lemaitre, p. 195. He ascribes this attitude solely to the Missolong-hiots' distrust of Ibrahim's promises, which they regarded as a trap. He is right when he says that their fear of being massacred was idle. I find only one in- stance during the war of the Turks having violated a ca- ATTACK ON KLISSOVA REPULSED 193 A last gleam of brilliant success illuminated the darkening fortunes of the Greeks. In all the lagoons, only the little island of Klissova, garrisoned by about two hundred men, under the brave Djavellas, remained now in their hands. On the 6th of April this was at- tacked by some two thousand of Kiutayeh's Albanians. Even the flat-bottomed boats of the enemy were, how- ever, unable to come close in land; and the soldiers were compelled to leap into the water and wade ashore through the mud, while, from behind their low en- trenchments, the Greeks met them with a deadly fire. The water was soon cumbered with the bodies of those who fell. The rest scrambled back into the boats, and made off. Ibrahim now thought he would like to prove the superiority of his disciplined troops, and, in his turn, made an attack on the island. But the Arabs met with no better success than the Albanians. Three times they advanced to the assault, and three times the volleys of the Greeks threw them into confusion pitulation — that of the surrender of the monastery of Seko by Pharmakidi (see Chap. III.), when the promise given by the Ottoman officers was held to be overruled by the special orders of the Sultan, which arrived subsequently'. The Greeks, of course, did so frequently; and, possibly, they judged others by themselves. I prefer, however, to believe that in this case their motive was a higher one. 13 194 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE and drove them back. Hussein, the conqueror of Kasos, of Crete, and of Sphakteria, fell mortally wounded while directing the third assault. The Greeks, with the loss of thirty-five men, remained masters of the island. Of the Turks, a thousand had fallen in vain. Had the Missolonghiots taken advantage of the dis- couragement of the besiegers, caused by this reverse, to throw themselves en masse upon the enemy, and cut their way through, the attempt would probably have succeeded. But, though reduced now to the greatest straits, they still looked forward confidently to the arrival of the fleet with relief. On the 31st of March, Admiral Miaoulis actually did appear; but his fleet was small, poorly armed, and undermanned. The combined navy of the Turks and Egyptians lay, in overwhelming strength, across his course; and, in the absence of flat-bottomed boats, he could make no at- tempt to throw provisions into the town by way of the lagoons. Eeluctantly he was compelled to relinquish his enterprise, and leave Missolonghi to its fate. This could noAV be no longer delayed. The town was reduced to the most miserable plight. The starved inhabitants wandered amid the ruins of their homes, looking more like ghosts than living men. For days they had been reduced to subsisting upon the most DESPERATE STRAITS OF THE GARRISON 195 loathsome food ; and now even rats and mice were lux- uries no longer obtainable. The sick and wounded, for whose care it was impossible to make provision, lay in neglect and filth, rotting in a living death. The brave defenders of the shattered walls, weakened by hunger, could scarcely any longer bear the weight of their arms. And now, even of the most miserable food, rations remained for only two more days. Yet no voice was raised in favour of surrender. The men of Missolonghi were determined, come what might, to be true to their vow to live or die as free men. There remained but one chance: to cut their way to life and freedom through the lines of the enemy; and a sortie of the garrison and all the inhabitants of the town was accordingly arranged for the night of the 22nd of April. It was hoped that in the surprise and confusion of the attack a large portion, at any rate, of the besieged might fight their way to liberty. Those who fell would at least die gloriously as free men. Botzares' plan was well conceived, and by no means hopeless of success. Communication was opened with Karaiskakis, and that chief was asked to send a strong body of Armatoli to the slopes of Mount Zygos, to feign an attack on the rear of the Turkish camp, and draw off the attention of the besiegers. The sound of the firing was to be the signal for th^ sortie to begin, 196 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE The Missolonghiots were to be divided into two bands: one was to attack the camp of Reshid; the other, with the women and children, to attempt to cut its way through the Egyptians. Once beyond the Mussulman lines, they could join hands with the Armatoli on Mount Zygos, and seek safety in the mountains. The plan, however, was betrayed to Ibrahim by a Bulgarian deserter. Karaiskakis, too, was unable to carry out his share of the programme. The messenger of Botzares found him lying ill in his tent, and the other chiefs of Armatoli too much occupied with their own selfish quarrels to care much about the fate of the heroic Missolonghiots. Only about two hundred men, under [N'oti Botzares, proceeded on the afternoon of the 22nd to Mount Zygos, only, however, to fall into an ambush of some two thousand Albanians, whom Ibrahim had posted there for the purpose of cutting them off. The sound of the firing was taken by the Missolonghiots to mean that the Armatoli had reached the place arranged. Unfortunately it also warned Ibrahim that the sortie might be expected that night, a belief which was confirmed by the unwonted stir and clamour in the town. He made his dispositions ac- cordingly. The troops lay under arms in the trenches ; and, in case the Greeks should succeed in breaking through, strong bodies of cavalry were held in reserve THE FINAL SORTIE 197 to fall upon them in the open ground beyond the camp. At nightfall the preparations of Botzares began. The soldiers were ordered to lie in the shallow moat in front of the wall until the signal should be given. Across this moat were thrown three bridges, and be- hind these were massed all those of the inhabitants who could walk — the men on the outside, the women and children in the midst. All were armed. The women were dressed as men ; the very children carried pistols. As yet there was no sign of wavering, and all alike seemed inspired by the same heroic resolution, the same steadfast patience. But hour after hour passed, and still the expected signal from Mount Zygos was not given. At last, about midnight, the moon rose. The excited warriors, their nerves strung to the utmost tension, seemed to take this as a signal to begin. With a wild shout they sprang out of the ditch, and rushed upon the hostile lines. At the same time the masses of men, women, and children began to crowd across the bridges. The Greek charge was met with a murderous fusillade from the Turkish trenches, and at the same time the Ottoman guns opened fire on the packed masses of humanity on the bridges. For a while these continued to advance without confusion; but pres- 198 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ently, as the hail of shot fell thick about them, those in the rear began to press forward, and in the crush that ensued some were in danger of being pushed off the edge into the ditch. One or more of these cried out * Back! Back! ' ^ in a frightened voice. The word was passed from mouth to mouth with increasing ter- ror. A panic seized the majority of those who had not yet crossed, and, believing that all was lost, or acting only on a blind impulse of fear, they turned and rushed wildly back into the town. The Mussulmans, with loud cries of ^ Allah! Allah!' leaped from their trenches, and entered the town together with the wretched fugitives.^ Then began a slaughter grim and great. From a cloudless sky the moon gazed calmly down on the awful scene of carnage. It seemed as though hell had been suddenly let loose on earth. The still air of the spring night was filled with the sound of yells and shrieks, the crackling of flames, and the crash of fall- 1 Finlay, ii. 108. This seems the most reasonable explana- tion of the panic. By some the cry of 'Back! ' has been ascribed to treason. 2Lemaitre (p. 200) says the Arabs waited till dawn before entering* the town, which they did only that they might exchange their cold tents for warm houses! They were fired upon from the windows, and, not till several had been killed, did the massacre begin. But M. Lemaitre can only sometimes be taken seriously. STORMING AND SACK OF MISSOLONGHI 199 ing timbers. Yet this night of lurid horror was not without its brighter episodes, its stirring examples of cool courage and steadfast heroism. In the bastion Botzares a lame man sat, linstock in hand, and waited the coming of the Turks. As the enemy swarmed over the battlements he set the light to the powder-maga- zine, and blew himself and them into eternity. The Primate Kapsalis took up his post in the cartridge fac- tory. A large body of Turks in search of plunder swarmed into the building; the heroic Greek set fire to the powder, and perished with them in the explo- sion. Papadiamantopulos, more noble than most of his class, had deliberately returned to Missolonghi, when the fate of the town could not be doubted, in order to set an example of fortitude to the people whose government he had conducted. He perished in the sack. Truly, had Byron lived to see this night, he would have admitted, in spite of all his former dis- illusion and disappointment, that at last ' Grecian mothers had given birth to men.' To return to those bands of the Greeks who had not been carried by the panic back into the town. Their first furious onset carried all before it. Led by the veteran Botzares, by Makris, and Djavellas, the hero of Klissova, they leaped into the Turkish trenches, and cutting and slashing with their yata- 200 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ghans, succeeded witli comparatively little loss in hew- ing their way througli tlie Ottoman lines. The con- fusion and the dim light helped them; and doubtless also the liberty to sack and murder in the doomed town had more attraction for the brutal soldiery than a struggle with desperate men. Once beyond the Turkish lines the Greeks imag- ined themselves safe. They were, however, woefully mistaken. "No sooner did they appear in the open than the cavalry, which Ibrahim had held in reserve for the purpose, fell upon them and scattered their already broken ranks. They met this new and unexpected danger, indeed, with dauntless courage; but what could a confused crowd of foot soldiers do against cavalry ? Individual acts of heroism are recorded. A girl, who was carrying her wounded brother, w^as at- tacked by a Turkish horseman. Putting down her burden, she took his gun, aimed with great coolness, and brought the Ottoman from his saddle. Then lift- ing her brother she resumed her flight.^ But escape was all but impossible where the treacherous moon- light betrayed every movement of the fugitives; and only a broken remnant of the Greeks reached the rug- ged slopes of Mount Zygos, where the nature of the ground rendered the pursuit of cavalry impossible. 1 Gordon, ii. 265, note. FATE OF THE FUGITIVES 201 Here at last they hoped to be safe; for here, ac- cording to the plan, Karaiskakis and his Armatoli were to have awaited them. No Greeks, however, appeared; and their signals were unanswered. At last, wearied out with the fight and their former privations, they halted in the deep shadows of the forest to rest, and to collect their scattered forces. Suddenly on all sides of them the thick undergrowth was ablaze with the flashes of muskets, and a deadly hail of lead fell once more among their broken ranks. Instead of falling among the friendly Armatoli, they had stumbled into an ambuscade of Kiutayeh's Albanians. There was no attempt at resistance. Many fell at the first volley. The rest, favoured by the darkness, continued their weary flight up the mountain. Of all the defenders of Missolonghi only some thirteen hundred souls, in- cluding about seven women and a few children, ulti- mately reached a place of safety. Many who had es- caped the sword of the Turks perished of hunger and exposure in the mountains. Plain and forest were strewn with the bodies of the dead, and in Missolonghi itself Ibrahim erected a ghastly trophy of three thou- sand heads. But, living or dead, the Missolonghiots had kept their word, and were free. The fall of Missolonghi marks an epoch in the story of the Hellenic revolt. Even after the lapse 202 THE WATl OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE of seventy years, it is impossible to read tlie account of the heroic defence of the town, and of its terrible fate, without emotion. At the time the effect of the news was profound. All Europe had been watching with breathless interest every phase of the titanic struggle. Missolonghi, the scene of Byron's romantic activity, the site of his grave, appealed in itself to the imagination of a world which had not yet shaken off the spell of the poet's genius; and, even without this, the heroism of its inhabitants would have sufficed to win for it the enthusiastic sympathies of Christendom. The defence and fall of Missolonghi then gave an im- mense impetus to the wave of Philhellenic feeling which was already sweeping all before it throughout Europe. The crimes, the follies, the selfishness of the Greeks were forgotten. The public opinion of Europe, itself growing restless under the yoke of Mettemich's reactionary policy, saw only the spectacle of a gallant people struggling ' against fearful odds ' for the lib- erty which is the birthright of all men; and, not in England only, but throughout Europe, an active prop- aganda was carried on in favour of the cause of Hellas. On the continent, where the Greeks were not recog- nised as belligerents, subscriptions were collected, os- tensibly to provide funds for the ransom of Greek slaves, really for the purposes of the war. Through- EFFECT OF THE DEFENCE OF MISSOLONGHI 203 out France, Germany, nay in Austria itself, societies were formed for this purpose. The smaller German princes, 'sentimental' professors, poets, and tradesmen alike, joined in a work which Metternich rightly felt was a practical revolt against his own policy of reac- tion. In spite of his protests, however, and of his police, he was unable to curb a movement for which even the Crown Prince of Prussia and Ludwig of Ba- varia openly expressed their sympathy. The empty coffers of the Greek Government continued to be re- plenished with European gold, and the Greek armies reinforced by European volunteers, till Reshid Pasha could exclaim, with bitterness and with truth, ' We are no longer fighting the Greeks, but all Europe ! ' CHAPTEE XII Eeshid reduces West Hellas — He advances into Attica — Eule of Gouras at Athens — Capture of Athens by the Turks — Siege of the Acropolis — Karaiskakis appointed commander-in-chief in East Hellas — His character — De- feat at Chaidari — Death of Gouras — Victories of Karais- kakis at Arachova and Distomo — General Gordon at Munychia — Attack of Keshid repulsed — Arrival of Church and Cochrane — Siege and surrender of the mon- astery of St. Spiridion — Massacre of the defenders — Death of Karaiskakis — Defeat of the Greeks before Athens — Fall of the Acropolis The fall of Missolonghi removed the barrier wliicli had kept the Ottoman forces pent up in the western corner of Greece, and the flood of war now rolled east- wards. Ibrahim, indeed, not altogether to Eeshid's sorrow, refused to join in the invasion of Eastern Hel- las. Mehemet Ali had already spent vast sums on the war, and felt no inclination to incur further ex- penditure with no immediate benefit to himself. Ibra- him then returned to his own pashalik of the Morea, where, inadequately supplied with funds and rein- 204 KIUTAYEH INVADES ATTICA 205 forcements, he spent the rest of the summer in com- parative inactivity. Kiutayeh, on the other hand, freed from the pres- ence of his hated rival, pushed the war with his accus- tomed vigour. Western Hellas was soon pacified. Many renowned chiefs of Armatoli, among them Yarnakiotes, who had taken part in the shameful massacre of Yrachori early in the war, gave in their submission ; and in July the Turkish Commander was free to push forward into Eastern Hellas. He occu- pied the passes over the mountains without meeting with serious resistance, strengthened the garrison of Thebes, and formed a junction with the forces of Omer Yrioni in Euboea. The united army of the Ottomans, 8,000 strong, with plentiful cavalry and guns, then marched into Attica, before the ingather- ing of the harvest. Odysseus, the hero of so many exploits, who had been supreme in this part of Greece during the earlier phases of the struggle, was now no more; and, in the Acropolis, his former lieutenant, Gouras, commanded in his place. The rule of Gouras, who now governed Eastern Hellas in the name of the Greek State, was that of a brigand chief rather than of a civilised adminis- trator. His tyranny and exactions were worse than 206 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE the worst experiences of Ottoman misrule, and when the Turks at last appeared, they were welcomed by the miserable peasantry of Attica as deliverers. Kiu- tayeh sought to strengthen this impression. He made grants of public lands to the peasants, and even en- rolled them in an organised police force to resist the incursions of the Greeks.^ Having by this wise and politic generosity won the sympathies of the inhabitants of the open country, the Ottoman commander advanced, without delay, on Athens, and laid siege to the town. On the approach of the Turks, Gouras with his immediate followers deserted the city, and threw himself into the Acropo- lis. The townspeople, who sought to follow him, he repulsed with brutal callousness. Thus left to their fate, they made no long resistance, and on the 25th of August the Turks carried the town by storm. A stream of fugitives fled to the Acropolis, and this time Gouras could not refuse to admit them. All eyes were now centred on the Acropolis, as they had once been on Missolonghi. The historic rock, crowned with immortal memories, and still bearing on its summit the glorious monuments of the great days of Greece, seemed the only remaining bulwark of Hellenic freedom. If it fell, nothing would be left 1 Cf. Gordon, ii. 331. 1 KARAISKAKIS 207 to prevent the Turk from sweeping across the Isthmus into the JNforea, where there was now no force capable of resisting his attack. But as long as the Acropolis held out, the Peloponnese was safe; for Reshid could not advance, leaving an unreduced fortress in his rear. At last the fatuous Government of Greece awoke to the imminence of the danger. The Greeks had cursed the selfishness and supineness of their rulers to which jMissolonghi had been sacrificed. If the Acropolis fell, there would be no rulers left to curse. Por a moment, in the presence of a common peril, the warring factions laid aside their quarrels. One man was now pointed out by a consensus of public opinion as alone capable, if he wished, of sav- ing Greece. If he wished — for the previous career of Karaiskakis had not been altogether such as to inspire unlimited confidence. In the character of this ex- traordinary man were present in full measure all those strange and vivid contrasts of light and shade, of baseness and nobility, which give to the actors in the story of the Greek revolt such remarkable dra- matic interest. Bred among the wild brigand tribes of Epirus, he had, from his youth up, been distinguished by his dauntless courage and his ready wit. These would seem to have earned him the special regard of 208 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE old Ali Pasha, who, though not given to the exercise of clemency, twice commuted a sentence of death which had been passed on the young brigand, and even enrolled him in his body-guard. Trained thus in the school of the Pasha of Janina, a character nat- urally fierce and subtle had received, as yet, little im- press of higher and nobler influences. After the fall of Ali, Karaiskakis took once more to the mountains, and, as a chief of Klephts, ultimately threw in his lot with the cause of the Greeks. His patriotism had, however, not been above suspicion. More than once he had entered into relations with the Turks, and was suspected, not without justice, of playing the same selfish game as Odysseus. But of his courage, his skill as a leader, and his immense influence over the w^ild hillsmen, there could be no doubt. Among the Armatoli his name had passed into a proverb. ^ Why are you running, fool,' they would cry out when any one fled, ^ as though Karaiskakis were after you? ' *" Karaiskakis,' said the Albanians of Kiutayeh's army, ' is the only Romaic captain whom we fear.' To this man the Hellenic government decided, not without misgiving, to entrust the command of the Greek forces in Attica. Zai'mis, the President, Karaiskakis's personal enemy, agreed to forget old grudges in the face of the common danger, em- GREEK REVERSE AT CHAIDARI 209 braced him in public, and formally handed over to him the leadership of the troops. Karaiskakis knew that he was distrusted, and with reason. ' Hitherto,' he said, ' I know I have been devil and angel by turns. Henceforward I am determined to be all angel.' ^ He kept his word. It seemed as though the new sense of a great responsibility, the consciousness that on his eiiorts rested the main hopes of the cause of his people, wrought in his character, as in that of many others in the course of the national uprising, a complete revo- lution. From a selfish partisan chief, he became a great national leader, and from this time, until he sealed his devotion with his death, gave himself up heart and soul to the service of his country. The immediate object of Karaiskakis was now to advance upon Athens, and raise the siege of the Acropolis. At Eleusis he gathered a band of some two thousand irregular warriors. Besides these, the French Colonel Fabvier was also present at the head of a thousand drilled troops; and together they advanced as far as Chaidari in the direction of Athens. Here, however, they were attacked by the Ottoman forces. Karaiskakis's hillsmen, entrenched behind their shallow tamhurias, repulsed the onslaught of 1 Mendelssohn, i. 432. 14 210 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE the enemy; but the regulars, either from pride or laziness, had neglected to entrench themselves, and were thrown into confusion by the Turkish horse. Their defeat involved also that of the irregulars, who were outflanked and compelled to retreat. The ad- vance upon Athens had, for the present, to be aban- doned. Meanwhile the defence of the Acropolis, on which so much depended, was in danger of collapsing. The brigands and mercenaries, who formed the greater part of the garrison, were no Missolonghiots, to dare all for the sake of their country. As the siege was pressed, and the conditions of life within the narrow citadel grew more and more intolerable, desertions be- came increasingly frequent, and more than once the troops broke out into open mutiny. Gouras was com- pelled to harass the enemy night and day with an unceasing fusillade, to keep them on the alert, and so prevent his own men slipping through their lines un- der cover of the darkness. At last, on the 13th of October, Gouras himself was killed. At first it seemed as though this misfortune would involve the fall of the fortress. But the heroic wife of the dead chieftain harangued the soldiers, upbraiding them for their cowardice, and, aided by her husband's lieutenant, Makriyanni, succeeded in persuading them to con- GREEK VICTORY AT ARACHOVA 211 tinue the defence. On tlie 23rd they were encouraged by the arrival of Kriezotes, who with 300 men had cut his way through the investing force. Two months later, Colonel Fabvier, with six hundred men, also succeeded in entering the fortress, bringing with him a supply of powder, but no provisions. As, however, he was unable, in spite of all his attempts, to cut his way out again, so large an additional force proved a severe strain on the already somewhat straitened re- sources of the garrison. Meanwhile Karaiskakis was endeavouring to re- peat, against Kiutayeh in Attica, the plan which Kolo- kotrones had used, in Argolis, so successfully against Dramali. His design was to seize all the passes between Eleusis and Marathon, in this way to cut off the Ottomans from their base of supplies, and so starve them out of Attica. But Reshid was a better general than Dramali; he saw the supreme importance of keeping his communications open, and sent out in good time a sufficient force to secure them. Karais- kakis was beaten, and had for the present to give up his plan. But though out-generalled by the Turkish commander-in-chief, he gained over one of his lieuten- ants a signal success, which did much to retrieve his defeat, and revive the courage of the Greeks. On the 5th of December he succeeded in cutting off, in a 212 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE mountain pass near Arachova, a detachment of some 2,000 Turkish troops under Mustapha Bey. Sur- rounded by hordes of savage hillsmen, the Ottomans defended themselves for some time with their accus- tomed valour. At last a violent snowstorm seemed to give them an opportunity for abandoning an unten- able position. Getting into such formation as was pos- sible under the circumstances, they prepared to make their way out of the trap into which they had been led. The main road, however, being now held by the enemy in force, they were compelled to take to the steep mountain-tracks which, even in fine weather, gave but a very insecure foothold. Struggling through the blinding snow, up these dizzy paths, they were at- tacked by the Greek mountaineers, who were in hot pursuit. The matchlocks of the Greeks had been ren- dered useless by the storm, and the soldiers used only their yataghans. Amid the swirling snow the work of butchery proceeded in ghastly silence. "When, their labour accomplished, the pursuers returned to Ara- chova, the inhabitants, who had heard no sound of fir- ing, asked what had become of the Turks. For only answer the Greeks held up their bloody knives. Of the Ottoman force scarce three hundred succeeded in making their escape. In February 1827 Karaiskakis added to his pres- ARRIVAL OF COCHRANE AND CHURCH 213 tige by another victory, repulsing Omer Vrioni from Distomo, with the loss of all his baggage and artillery. These and other lesser successes made him appear in- vincible to the wild tribesmen. The chiefs of xVrma- toli, who had but lately submitted to Kiutayeh, once more changed their fickle allegiance, and joined the Greek leader with all their forces. Beyond the imme- diate reach of Eeshid's army, and excepting Misso- longhi, Anatoliko, Lepanto, and Vonitza, all continen- tal Greece was now again restored to the Hellenic cause. Karaiskakis had more than justified the confi- dence reposed in him. Meanwhile, however, new actors had appeared upon the scene. The Hellenic Government was now almost wholly dependent on the sympathy of the Philhellenes of Europe for the means of carrying on the war; and in the first outburst of despair that fol- lowed the fall of Missolonghi, it had even been pro- posed in the ^N'ational Assembly to place Greece formally under the protection of England. The timely arrival of General Gordon with a sum of 14,000?. alone saved the country from ruin. With the help of this sum a fleet of sixty vessels of war and twenty-one fire-ships had been fitted out, the regular troops reorganised under Colonel Fabvier, and some nine thousand Armatoli taken into the pay of the 214 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDEIS^CE Government. Early in 1827 Lord Cochrane and Sir Kichard Church arrived in the Morea, and were ap- pointed high admiral of the fleet and generalissimo of the land forces respectively. The veteran Miaonlis, in spite of his well-earned fame, consented, with a rare disinterestedness, to accept a subordinate post under the English Admiral; and when, in April, Lord Coch- rane and Sir Kichard Church arrived at Phalerum, Karaiskakis added to his laurels by agreeing with- out demur to serve under the orders of the new gen- eral. Already, on Eebruary 5, 1827, General Gordon had landed and entrenched himself on the hill of Alunychia, near the ancient harbour of Athens. His plan was to fortify this as a base for an advance on the Ottoman camp, while the attention of the Turks was diverted by a demonstration from Eleusis in the direction of Menidi. This latter ended in disaster. An advanced guard of 800 Armatoli, under the brave and enthusiastic Colonel Burbaki, was fallen upon by a superior Turkish force, and cut up. Five hundred of the Greeks, with their heroic leader, fell in this engagement; while the rear guard of 2,000 men, un- der ^N^otaras and Yassos, fled without coming in sight of the enemy. After this success Eeshid, on the 11th of Febru- OPERATIONS BEFORE ATHENS 215 ary, advanced on Munycliia to attempt to dislodge General Gordon. The onset of the Turks was, how- ever, repulsed, partly by the vigorous resistance of the Greeks, but still more owing to a hail of shot and shell poured upon them by the steamer Kartcria which, imder the command of the brave Philhellene Captain Hastings, had entered the bay. On the arrival of Cochrane and Church at Phale- rum, a council of war was at once held to settle on the I)lan of campaign. Karaiskakis proposed to have re- course to the plan which he had already unsuccessfully attempted : to occupy the mountain passes leading into the plain of Attica, and starve the Turks out. "With the increased forces now at the command of the Greeks, the country at their backs no longer hostile, and the command of the sea, this plan, had it been accepted, would not improbably have been crowned with success. But Cochrane's whole temperament dis- inclined him to cautious measures, and Church, as his subsequent proceedings proved, was incapable of grasping the true conditions of the war he had under- taken to conduct. Karaiskakis was overruled, and it was determined to make a direct attack on the Otto- man position at Athens. On the 20th of April a body of troops under Major Urquhart landed at Munychia; and on the 25th a 216 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE chance skirmisli brought on a general engagement with the Ottoman troops stationed near the monas- tery of Saint Spiridion. Cochrane, seeing his oppor- tunity, put himself at the head of the Greeks, and, armed only with a telescope, led them in person against the Turkish entrenchments. The impetuous onrush of the Greeks carried all before it ; and, before the victorious soldiery stopped, seven of the smaller Turkish redoubts had been captured, communication established between the Greek camps at Phalerum and Munychia, and Kiutayeh's vanguard isolated in the promontory of the Pirseus. In the monastery of Saint Spiridion, however, a band of 300 Albanians still held out, and these it now became necessary to reduce. For two days the brave defenders repulsed every effort to storm their position ; but on the third day want of water compelled them to capitulate; and General Church granted them honourable terms. Unfortu- nately, he had taken very inadequate measures to in- sure the terms being observed. They were to march out with the honours of. war, Karaiskakis and one or two other leaders as hostages in their midst. When the Albanians emerged from the gate of the monastery they were at once surrounded by an angry and excited mob of Greek soldiery. Some chance altercation led to a shot being fired; and immediately there began a MASSACRE AT MUNYCHIA 217 hideous slaughter. In vain Karaiskakis sought to stop the bloodshed. The Albanians broke and fled, pur- sued by the furious Greeks. Karaiskakis cried out to them, in his horror and disgust, to kill him, as was their right. The panic-stricken wretches, however, were thinking only of their own safety. A few suc- ceeded in escaping to the Turkish lines, but the greater number were slain. This ghastly breach of faith on the part of the Greeks was an ill-omened beginning of their cam- paign. Cochrane was furious; Church apologetic. A certain measure of responsibility undoubtedly rests upon the head of the English general; for, knowing the fierce and unreliable character of the Greeks, he should have taken measures to prevent his, soldiers coming anywhere near the Albanians during their out- march; and, above all, he should himself have been present to see that the terms of the capitulation were honourably observed. The 5th of May was fixed for the general attack on the Turkish camp; but an untoward event led to its being postponed till the 6th. Strict orders had been issued that there was to be no outpost skirmishing on the day before the battle. To hold fire within sight of their enemy was, however, more than the hot-blooded Armatoli could achieve; and Karaiskakis, 218 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE lying ill and feverish in his tent, was suddenly aroused by the sound of firing. Kushing out to discover the cause, he found a Greek outpost engaged in a sharp encounter mth a small party of the enemy. He at once joined in the fray, to try and drive back the enemy and stop the fight. In the eagerness of pur- suit, however, he advanced too far, and was isolated from his men. Surrounded by foes, before his sol- diers could come to his rescue, he received a bullet in the body, and was carried mortally wounded from the field. When the news of this misfortune spread abroad the effect was profound. The Greeks, who till now had been eager for the battle, and, if anything, over- confident as to its result, were overcome with grief, and filled with despair and the gloomiest foreboding. In the Ottoman camp the exultation was correspond- ingly great; and the Albanian outposts shouted over in derision to the Greeks : ' You must put on mourn- ing; Karaiskakis is dead! ' xiU night the wounded hero lay dying. While breath remained in his body his soldiers swore they would not leave his side; but, even if they could have been induced to move, it would have been impossible to undertake a serious military enterprise with troops in such a temper; and it was accordingly decided to postpone the attack for an- ROUT OF THE GREEKS 219 other day, and give the soldiery time to recover their spirits. Between Munychia and Athens the ground was covered with olive yards and gardens, which would have afforded excellent cover for the advance of irreg- ular troops. But for some unexplained, and perhaps inexplicable, reason. Church had transferred his base from the Pirseus to the eastern end of the Bay of Phalerum, and here on the morning of the 6th of May the main body of the attacking force was landed. Be- tween it and the enemy lay a stretch of open downs, affording no cover for infantry, but excellent manoeu- vring ground for the Ottoman cavalry. Church was still on his yacht, where ' in most unmilitary ' fashion ^ he had made his headquarters. The Greeks, sullen and depressed, advanced across the open in a straggling line, without order and with no eagerness. Suddenly, from a ravine where they had been concealed by the Ottoman commander, a large body of Turkish cavalry burst upon them; and the Greeks, with hardly a pre- tence of resistance, broke and fled. Cochrane and Church had just landed from their yachts when the crowd of fugitives, close pressed by the Ottomans, rushed helter-skelter to the shore. The English officers had barely time to wade into 1 Finlay, ii. 143. 220 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE tlie sea, and scramble into their boats, before the panic-stricken mob readied them. For the rest, all that could be done was to turn the guns of the ships upon the victorious Turks, and hold them at bay till the fugitives could be taken off by the boats. As it was, 1,500 Greeks perished in this disgraceful rout. The effects of the defeat were out of all propor- tion to the importance of the battle. The English officers, whose arrival had been hailed with such un- bounded hope and enthusiasm, fell into discredit; for it was felt, with some justice, that the reverse was in great part due to their defective judgment and their lack of a true grasp of the situation. The army of irregular warriors, which had only been held together by the commanding personality of Karaiskakis, now melted away like snow; and all hope of driving Kiu- tayeh from Attica, or of raising the siege of the Acrop- olis, had to be abandoned. Of all the positions which had been won in the recent fights, Munychia alone remained in the hands of the Greeks. Here Church held out for three weeks longer, more for honour's sake than for any end it could serve. On the 27th of May, he abandoned this post also, and, before leaving, he sent orders to the garrison of the Acropolis to sur- render the fortress. They refused with scorn. ' We are Greeks,' they answered, ' and determined to live SURRENDER OF THE ACROPOLIS 221 or die free. If Keshid wants our arms, let him come and fetch them ! ' In spite of these heroics, however, they thought better of it. Negotiations were opened with the Turkish commander-in-chief through the in- tervention of the French Admiral de Rignj, who chanced to be in the harbour; and a rumour that Ibrahim was approaching from the Morea made Keshid more amenable to terms; for the proud Otto- man did not feel inclined to yield the laurels of vic- tory a second time to the hated Egyptian. On the 5th of June the garrison of the Acropolis marched out with the honours of war, Reshid himself, at the head of a strong body of cavalry, keeping the line of march, and seeing that the terms of the capitulation were ob- served.^ The Turks were now once more masters of the whole of continental Greece, and had Kiutayeh ad- vanced at once across the Isthmus, the insurrection must have been finally crushed. Happily for Greece, his jealousy of Ibrahim prevented him from doing anything to aid him in reducing his pashalik to order; 1 Mendelssohn, i. 456. Jurien de la Graviere, Station du Levant, ii. 137. The conduct of Reshid throug-hout the nego- tiations for the surrender of the Acropolis was marked by a moderation and straightforwardness which did him great credit. See Finlay, ii. 153. 222 THE WAK OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE and instead of advancing into the Morea, he returned to Janina, where he employed himself in consolidating the provinces he had reconquered. Once more the Greeks had been saved in spite of themselves. CHAPTEE Xni Fall of the Government of Konduriottes — Zaimis elected President — Renewal of party strife — League of Koloko- trones and Konduriottes against Zaimis — Sissinis elected as a rival President — Rival assemblies at Damala and ^gina — Arrival of Lord Cochrane and Sir Richard Church — They reconcile the factions — Assembly at Damala — Capodistrias elected President — Constitution of Troezene — Provisional administration formed — Mis- erj' of the country — Tyranny of the Klephts and Arma- toli — Piracy in the .^gean — Photomaras and Grivas in Nauplia — Operations of Ibrahim in the Morea — Trea- son of Nenekos — Campaign of Kolokotrones — Successes of the Greeks — Ibrahim devastates Messenia After the fall of Missolonghi, the interest of the war during the year 1826 had been centred in Attica. In July, indeed, Miaoulis had sailed, with the fleet fitted out with the money brought by General Gordon, to the relief of Samos. On the 11th and 12th of Sep- tember he had engaged the Turks in a running fight, the Greek sailors once more displaying their superior seamanship, and had forced them to take refuge under the guns of the Dardanelles. On land, however, no 223 224 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE decisive action was fought. Ibraliam for tlie time was powerless; Mehemet Ali had sent him no reinforce- ments; his troops were worn out and demoralised; and in l^ovember he retired into winter quarters at Modon, where he remained until April 1827. The Greeks, relieved from the most pressing dangers, were free to waste their energies in talk, and their strength in suicidal strife. The fall of Missolonghi had brought to a head the furious discontent of the people with the selfish and incompetent government of Konduriottes, who was compelled to bow to the storm, and resign the Presidency. Zaimis was elected in his place, and a governing committee of eight members formed, from which both Konduriottes and Kolokotrones were ex- cluded. This was the signal for the beginning of a still more furious war of parties; and even the Phil- hellenic sympathies of Europe were torn to shreds to form the ensigns of hostile factions, which dubbed themselves English, French, or Russian, according to the nation whose interference they most favoured. It was characteristic also that the party divisions, even under these alien designations, followed local divi- sions. Miaoulis, Mavrocordatos, and the islanders gen- erally were ' English.' The Moreots declared for Rus- sia, following the lead of Kolokotrones, who hated i CAPODISTRIAS ELECTED PRESIDENT 225 both Mavrocordatos and the Hydriots, who had held him prisoner. The Rumeliots, or continental Greeks, were ^ French.' In November the ISTational Assembly, which was powerless amid the strife of armed factions at Piada, was transferred by Zaimis to the island of zKgina. Konduriottes and Kolokotrones, patching up a tem- porary truce in their common hatred of Zaimis, now summoned a second Assembly at Kastri, and, in Feb- ruary 1827, elected Sissinis President. Once more Hellas, already bleeding from so many wounds, seemed in danger of being torn asunder by civil war. At this crisis, however, Lord Cochrane and Sir Richard Church appeared upon the scene, and their earnest re- monstrances succeeded in once more uniting the rival parties. Both Assemblies were dissolved, and, in March 1827, a new one called together at Damala, near the ancient Troezene. Zaimis and Sissinis also now both resigned, and the Assembly proceeded to the election of a new President. The choice fell upon Count Capodistrias, the ex-minister of Russia, for whose election Kolokotrones and the ^ Russian ' party had long been intriguing.^ The appointment w^as to be for seven years, and until the arrival of the new President, the Government was placed in the hands of 1 Mendelssohn, i. 440 445. 15 226 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE a committee of three. George Mavromichales, Milia- itis, and Kakos were the commissioners chosen. In May 1827 was published the Constitution of Troezene, the charter of the liberties of Greece. This was in many ways a document of singular interest. As an instrument of effective government, indeed, it was stillborn, but as a manifesto embodying the ideal of the Hellenic race it was full of significance; for it pro- claimed in the face of Europe that, whatever fate the diplomacy of the Cabinets might have in store for Greece, she herself would never rest content until the whole of those members of the Hellenic race who had risen in arms against the Turk had obtained their lib- erty. The limits of the new Greek State were to in- clude Albania, Thessaly, Samos, and Crete! ' Apart from this pronounced Panhellenism, the constitution was remarkable for an enunciation of democratic ideas far in advance of those of any State of Europe, includ- ing as it did the principle of government by the peo- ple, the equality of all before the law, freedom of opin- ion and of the press, and provisions against arbitrary taxation and imprisonment without trial. ^ The actual condition of Greece was indeed a curi- ous commentary on these ambitious and high-soaring sentiments. When, on the 17th of May, the Assem- iMendelssohn, i. 460. ANARCHY IN GREECE 227 blj dissolved, its work dissolved with it. In the actual state of the country force was the only principle of government that found recognition; and every ad- venturer who could command a dozen cut-throats thought himself entitled to a share in the spoils of office. The provisional government, which had been appointed till the arrival of Capodistrias, was as cor- rupt as it was incompetent; and it was indeed charac- teristic of the state of Greek politics that this had been entrusted to two rogues and a fool. George Mavromi- chales ^ and Miliaitis, intent only on making their fort- unes while they might, found the readiest way to this end in selling their countenance to the pirates who had now begun to swarm in the iEgean, a scandal which Kakos was too imbecile to prevent. The Senate which, under the terms of the consti- tution, had been elected for three years, was a mere debating club, and hardly even that. Kolokotrones, in derision, had insisted in forcing its presidency on Dr. Eeniaris, a deaf old Cretan, who at the time of his election had in vain sought to escape from the danger- ous honour by hiding behind an almond tree! ^ I Even had the Government been honest and com- i 1 Georg-e Mavromichales, who afterwards murderea [Capodistrias, had the virtues and the vices of a brig-and chief. As a Mainote he could have no objection to piracy. 2 Mendelssohn, i. 461. 228 THE WAR OF GREEK IITDEPENDENCE petent, the task that lay before it might well have proved too much for its strength. The country was utterly exhausted; no taxes could be collected; no customs levied ; and, save for the contributions of the Philhellenes, the coffers of the State were empty. Everywhere, too, the wildest anarchy reigned supreme. The islanders, weary of an unprofitable war, had taken to piracy, and turned their arms against the commerce of all nations. Spezziots and Hydriots did what seemed good in their own eyes. The Psariots made JEgina. itself the centre of their depredations; and the fugitive Cretans in the Cyclades had established pirate strongholds, from which they issued to scour the nar- row seas. On the mainland, too, the fortresses in the possession of the Greeks had been converted into rob- bers' nests. J. Mavromichales in Monemvasia, Dja- vellas in Acrocorinthos, levied blackmail on the wretched peasants of the surrounding country. In jSTauplia the castles of Itsch-kale and Palamidi were held by rival bands of Suliots and Eumeliots, under their chiefs Photomaras and Grivas, who, when not engaged in bombarding each other, agreed in wring- ing contributions from the miserable inhabitants of the town by torture and imprisonment. In the open coun- try wandering bands of Armatoli passed hither and thither, plundering what the devastating columns of PHOTOMARAS AND GRIVAS IN NAUPLIA 229 Ibrahim had spared; and the wretched peasants fled to the mountains, or here and there turned desperately on their tormentors. At Argos the townsmen threw barricades across the roads, and fired on every soldier who appeared in sight. ^ In June civil war seemed once more on the point of breaking out. To plundering in the abstract the Moreot Klephts had, of course, no objection. But they could not endure that a Peloponnesian town should be laid under contribution by Rumeliots. The position of Photomaras and Grivas in Kauplia was gall and wormwood to them; and they determined to make an effort to expel them. To this end they de- vised a plot which, in men themselves so treacherous and shifty, displayed a touching simplicity and trust. An officer of Grivas was bribed, with the gift of a pair of gold-mounted pistols, to admit the younger Koloko- trones and a party into the fort of Palamidi. The of- ficer agreed, kept the pistols, and betrayed the plot to his chief. The night of the 9th of June was chosen for the en- terprise. A postern in the wall of the lower town had purposely been left open oy Photomaras. Through this Kolokotrones, with a body of 250 men, penetrated into the town; while Tsokris, with another band, 1 Mendelssohn, i. 463. 230 THE WAR OF GEEEK INDEPENDENCE clim'bed the steep ascent to Palamidi. Arrived at tlie castle, tlie latter found the door unlocked as agreed, and passed through it with his men. But he was scarcely inside before a murderous volley was opened upon him at close quarters. Completely taken by sur- prise, and wounded at the first discharge, he turned and fled out of the mouth of the trap, pursued down the hill by the laughter and the bullets of the Ku- meliots. Meanwhile Kolokotrones had fared no better. Surrounded, in a house which he had seized, by the superior forces of Photomaras, he had to ransom him- self and his men by signing a bond for 60,000 piastres. Scarcely had the Rumeliot chiefs got rid of this danger, however, when they began once more to quar- rel with each other. Accusations brought against Kolettes, who was accused of receiving Ottoman bribes, had raised party spirit to white heat, and Pho- tomaras and Grivas plunged into the fray, on opposite sides. The guns of the forts of ISTauplia were now turned against each other, and for days a vigorous bom- bardment was kept up. On the 13th of July alone, more than two hundred bombs and shot were dis- charged. The wretched townsmen, already stripped by the rival gangs of ruffians of nearly all they pos- sessed, now saw their homes reduced to ruin solely to prove which robber should have the right to deprive INTERVENTION OF CODRINGTON 231 tliem of the rest. The town caught fire in several places, and a hundred souls perished in the flames. The inhabitants tried to escape into the open country ; but the gates were occupied by soldiery, who drove them back, or only sold the right to leave the town at a high tariff. To this hotbed of anarchy the Government had been transferred a month before. The provisional committee now fled, and was followed speedily by the Senate, wliicli on the 14tli of July had lost three of its members by the bursting of a bomb in its midst. Once more the situation was saved by foreign intervention. During the height of the bombardment Admiral Codrington had arrived off l^Tauplia, and now interfered on behalf of the townspeople, whom he per- suaded the chiefs to allow to depart. The city was soon deserted by all its inhabitants; and, of all the Greek leaders, only Demetrius Hypsilanti remained, obedient to what he considered his duty, in his bullet-riddled house. On the 19th of July a conference was arranged be- tween the rival chieftains on board Captain Hamilton's ship. It was represented to them strongly by the Brit- ish officer how fatal the continuance of their course of action would be to the Greek cause, since, however willing the Powders might be to interfere on behalf of 232 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Greece, it was impossible for tliem to negotiate with a Government terrorised by armed factions. Sir Richard Church, who had meanwhile also arrived, added his representations to those of the admiral. Photomaras, who had had rather the worst of the bombardment, made a virtue of necessity, and yielded his stronghold to the Government. Grivas, however, still held out, and refused to evacuate Palamidi, ex- cept for payment of a million piastres; and, since no one had the power to force him, he remained for the time master of the situation. Meanwhile, after five months of inactivity Ibrahim had, on the 18th of April, once more taken the field, and marched northwards into Elis. For three weeks he was detained before the castle of Klemutsi, into which Sissinis had hastily thrown himself on the news of the Egyptian advance ; but, at the end of the third week, want of water compelled the garrison to capitu- late, and the Egyptians continued their march to Rhium. Ibrahim, who had hitherto raged like a lion, now changed his policy, and began to play the fox. Everywhere he treated the peasantry with the greatest forbearance, leaving them their seed corn, and paying them for all his provender. This new and unlooked- for generosity bore fruit; and whole districts, weary j of the hor>eless struggle, sent in their submission, and IBRAHIM IN ELIS 233 returned to tlie Ottoman allegiance. I^enekos of Zabati, who had first set the example of defection, even raised a corps of irregulars to act as auxiliaries to the Egyptians. The news of this treason and of the defection of so many whole eparchies from the Greek cause roused the old lion Kolokotrones from his lair. Casting aside at the call of patriotism the miserable intrigues and quarrels in which he had been immersed, he threw himself, with his accustomed fierce energy, into the task of resisting the victorious advance of the Egyp- tians. He issued a proclamation calling on all men capable of bearing arms, between the ages of sixteen and sixty, to rise for the defence of their country. A corps was despatched against the traitor jSTenekos. An- other, imder Mketas, marched southward into Mes- senia, to attack Ibrahim's base. Two more, under Gennaios ^ Kolokotrones and Paploutas, were deputed to hold the mountain passes in the centre of the Morea. Kolokotrones himself marched to Corinth and the lake of Phonia, to join i^otaras and his Corinthians in watching Ibrahim's further movements. In the irregular warfare that followed the advan- tage remained on the side of the Greeks. An attempt 1 I.e. the * brave,' a nickname given him by the Armatoli for his courage. 234 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE of Ibrahim to seize the monastery of Megaspilaion was frustrated by the valour of the militant monks. He then tried to penetrate into Karytsena; but the forces of Gennaios and Paploutas held the passes, and he was compelled to turn back. He retired baffled into Messenia; and the Greeks were correspondingly elated. Further triumphs awaited them in the north. On the 15th, and again on the 29th, of July Kolokotrones defeated the combined forces of isTenekos and Achmet Bey at St. Ylasi and the Cloister of Saint John. He lacked the means, however, to take full advantage of his victory and attack Patras. In vain he urged the Hellenic Government to send him supplies of food and ammunition. ' I cannot,' he wrote indignantly, * feed my soldiers with air, turn earth into powder, or rocks into bread! ' The Government paid no at- tention to his urgent messages, either because they had no supplies to send, or because they were too much oc- cupied with their own selfish ends to care about the conduct of the war. The Greeks as well as the Turks were, therefore, compelled to live upon the unhappy peasants, who thus found themselves ground between the upper and the nether millstone. Ibrahim, hearing that Kolokotrones was about to make an effort to reconquer the districts which had SUCCESSES OF THE GREEKS 235 submitted to tlie Ottoman rule, now sent reinforce- ments hj sea to Patras. Achmet Bey also once more led an expedition out of Patras, and, guided bv ISTen- ekos, marched along the coast of Acliaia,witb a view to securing the current harvest. But Kolokotrones was prepared. At Yostitza his lieutenant Paploutas defeat- ed the Turkish force, and hurled it back on Patras; and shortly afterwards another body of Ottomans was defeated by Gennaios amid the vineyards of Divri, and driven back on Pyrgos. On the news of these victo- ries, the districts which had fallen away from the na- tional cause once more threw in their lot with the Greeks. A new danger now loomed in the South- West, where Ibrahim was threatening the reduction of Arcadia and the Maina; and Kolokotrones hastened southward to the aid of [N'iketas. But the wild Main- otes, invincible in their own mountain fastnesses, held the passes successfully against all the Egyptians' efforts to force them; and Ibraham, furious at these continu- ous checks, now let loose his hordes of savages once more over the open country. 'Not only life itself, but everything that could support life was to be destroyed. His devastating columns crossed and recrossed the country in every direction, the line of their march being marked by clouds of smoke and flame. In this 236 THE AVAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ruthless campaign of destruction more than sixty thou- sand fig and olive trees, the staple support of the coun- try people, were destroyed. It was, hoAvever, too late for any barbarous cruelty to succeed in crushing the liberties of Greece. The enthusiasm of the peo- ples of Europe had at last borne fruit, and stronger hands were about to take up the sword which Hellas had all but let slip from her weakening grasp. Soon the thunder of the guns in the bay of IsTavarino would proclaim to all the world that Europe had at last recog- nised the right of a heroic people to freedom. CHAPTER XIV Greece and the Powers — Eussian proposals — Attitude of Canning" and Metternich — Conferences at St. Petersburg — Changed relations of the Powers — Break up of the Holy Alliance — Attitude of Alexander I. — His death — Crisis in Russia — Uncertainty of the succession — Mili- tary revolt — Accession of Nicholas — Russian ultimatum to Turkej' — Protocol of St. Petersburg — Military reforms in Turkey — Massacre of the Janissaries — Alliance of Russia, France, and England — Treaty of London FoK years the attempts of the Powers to arrive at some mutual understandingj with a view to the settle- ment of the Greek question, had dragged on without leading to any generally acceptable proposals. At first the policy of the Holy Alliance, the Concert of Europe for the suppression of ^ revolution ' and ' im- piety,' had been supreme; and, under the influence of Metternich, the revolt of the Greeks had been put under the ban of the European Cabinets. The open sympathy of Canning for the Greeks had been the first sign of a coming change, and led the Russian Govern- ment to believe that England might herself soon take 237 238 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE up the cliampionship of the Hellenic cause, which Eussia, under the influence of Metternich and Can- ning's predecessor, Castlereagh, had hitherto declined. But if the Greeks were to find a friend, it was intoler- able that that friend should be England, and the Czar's government determined to anticipate her possible ac- tion. In January 1824, accordingly, a proposal, which has already been mentioned, was laid before the vari- ous courts by the Kussian representatives.^ This plan, however, which proposed to erect the three provinces of the Morea, and East and West Hellas, into tribu- tary principalities on the model of Moldavia and Wal- lachia, found favour with no one. The Greeks them- selves rejected it with scorn and indignation; and Canning refused to consider any scheme that did not recognise the right of the Greeks to mould their own destinies.^ Conferences were indeed opened at St. Petersburg to attempt to reach an agreement; but Canning ordered the British representative to with- draw,^ and, though the other plenipotentiaries re- mained, the diplomatic debate dragged on without ar- riving at any result. The motive underlying the Rus- sian proposals was indeed too clear to deceive anyone, much less the astute diplomacy of Metternich, who, while, in the interests of the Holy Alliance, he desired 1 Prokesch-Osten, i. 249. 2 M. i. 311-314. a Id. i. 319. CONFERENCE AT ST. PETERSBURG 239 to humour the Czar, had no desire to see Russia play- ing in the Levant the role of patron which she had as- sumed in the Danubian Principalities. After sitting for some time without effecting anything, the Confer- ence was adjourned for several months. In February 1825 it met again, and Metternich now declared through the Austrian plenipotentiary that the court of Vienna could recognise only one of two alterna- tives, either the complete subjection or the complete independence of Greece.^ With the idea of a group of vassal States, which Russia desired to force upon the Porte, he flatly refused to have anything to do. France had been won over to his views during a visit he had paid to Charles X. in Paris, in the spring of 1825.^ Under these circumstances Russia had no choice but to yield; and the sole result of the St. Petersburg Conferences was that, on the 13th of March, it was resolved to present a joint note to the Porte inviting it to accept the mediation of the Powers in the settlement of the Greek question.^ Needless to say, in the absence of any threat of com- pulsion, this proposal was indignantly refused by the Ottoman Government. On the relations of the Powers themselves, how- 1 Prokesch-Osten, i. 341; Mendelssohn, i. 387. 2 Mendelssohn, i. 389. 3 Prokesch, i. 340. 240 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ever, the effect of the Conferences was more impor- tant. The spell which the genius and personal charm of Metternich seemed to have thrown over the mind of the Emperor Alexander was broken, and the relations between the courts of St. Petersburg and Vienna were strained almost to snapping. As France and Prussia both inclined to favour the Austrian policy, Russia now found herself compelled to court the sympathies of England. For the present, indeed, the sharp di- vergence of the ultimate aims of the two Powers for- bade any actual alliance. A certain distance, how- ever, either might proceed without clashing with the views of the other; and Canning was not ill-content when, in a note dated August 18, 1825, Alexander announced to the great Powers his intention of taking matters into his own hands. ^ A journey which, at this time, the Czar made to the south of Pussia was generally looked upon as connected with warlike prep- arations directed against Turkey. The unexpected death of Alexander, however, which occurred at Taganrog on the 1st of December, threw everything again into uncertainty. The new Czar might reverse the policy of his predecessor; and it was not even known who the new Czar was to be. Constantine, the eldest son of the late Emperor, and 1 Mendelssohn, i. 390. ACCESSION OF THE CZAR NICHOLAS 241 rightful heir to the throne, was a mere unlettered sav- age. In 1820, moreover, he had divorced his wife, and contracted a morganatic union with a certain Countess Grudzinska. This circumstance, and per- haps some consciousness of his own utter unfitness to rule, had induced him, in 1823, to sign a resignation of his claim to the crown in favour of his second brother, the Grand Duke Mcholas, who was married to the Prussian Princess Charlotte. The Czar Alex- ander had agreed to this arrangement, and the formal documents had been duly executed, and deposited in the archives at Moscow and St. Petersburg, but with such secrecy that the transaction had not become gen- erally known, and Nicholas himself had received no official intimation of it. When, therefore, the news of Alexander's death reached St. Petersburg, Nicholas himself took the oath of allegiance to Constantine, and administered it also to the imperial guard. Not till this was done were the documents unsealed which appointed Nicholas heir to the Empire. Even now he refused to mount the throne, unless he received from Constantine a re- newal of his abdication. The result of this delay and uncertainty was an inevitable confusion, of which the forces of discontent were quick to avail themselves. For some years before the death of Alexander the 16 242 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE army had been honeycombed with secret societies hav- ing for their object the overthrow of the autocratic power of the Czars. Outside military circles these plots had met with little support; but amongst the officers, and especially those who had been exposed to the influences of AVestern Liberalism during the three years passed by the Kussian army in France, revolutionary ideas had obtained a strong foothold. The objects aimed at by the conspirators were by no means uniform. Some, like Nicholas Turgeniew, desired only by the gradual spread of education and enlightenment to pave the way for con- stitutional government. Others dreamed of a Russian republic, and, like Colonel Pestel, wished to have re- course to a military rising. Various plans for an out- break had been projected even during Alexander's lifetime, but unforeseen circumstances had always arisen to prevent their coming to a head. The con- fusion and uncertainty which now followed the death of the Czar, however, seemed an opportunity not to be neglected, and led the conspirators to precipitate their action. For the mass of the common soldiers, of course, the word ' Constitution ' had no meaning whatever. An instrument for working upon them, however, was discovered in the double oath which, in the course of RUSSIAN MILITARY REVOLT 243 a few days, they were required to take. It was pointed out to them that to swear allegiance to Nicholas was a breach of the oath which they had already taken to Constantino. The 26th of December was the day fixed for the administration of the new oath to the army. Several regiments, however, refused to take it, and with flying colours and rolling drums, marched into the square opposite the Senate house, shouting for Constantino and Constitution, which latter they had been told was the name of Constantine^s wife ! ^ The revolt threatened to spread among the rest of the troops, and ominous signs were not wanting of unrest even among the civil population. But the firmness of Nicholas prevented the most serious con- sequences. The mutineers were surrounded by a strong force of reliable troops, and summoned to lay down their arms. At first they refused, and shot down General Miloradovitch, who was endeavouring to bring them to reason. The Czar then ordered the ar- tillery to be turned against them; and three rounds of grape sufficed to quell the mutiny. Five of the ringleaders, including Colonel Pestel, were arrested and executed. Many of the subordinate agents were transported to Siberia; and the whole conspiracy was completely broken up. The revelation of this wide- spread disaffection in the army was, however, a dis- 1 Mendelssohn, i. 395. 244 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE agreeable discovery, and inclined the Czar more and more to the idea of a Turkish war, as a means of re- storing the morale of his troops. The course of events at St. Petersburg had been a severe blow to Metternich. When Alexander died, he knew nothing of the alteration made in the suc- cession, and had written to congratulate Constantine with unconcealed joy. He knew that from Constan- tine the cause of the Greeks would have little to ex- j)ect; that he hated England, despised France, loathed Prussia as a hotbed of revolutionary intrigue, and was wholly devoted to Austria.^ ^ The Russian romance is at an end,' he wrote exultingly; ' now begins Rus- sian history.' ^ And now Constantine had given place to Nicholas, who, in every important respect, was the exact reverse of his brother. Nicholas, indeed, who in character seemed half Puritan, half drill-sergeant, had little enough sympathy for the Greeks. ' Don't speak to me of Greeks ! ' he is said to have exclaimed, ^ I call them rebels! ' Nevertheless the course to which personal inclination would never have led him was being gradually forced on him by the logic of political necessity; for, apart from the military reasons already mentioned, and which would have made the need for 1 Metternich to Baron Ottenfels, December 18, 1825. Prolcesch, Appendix, vi. 15. 2 lb. ' L'histoire de la Russia va commencer la oil vient de finir le roman.* POLICY OF CANNING 245 the active intervention of Kussia in the affairs of the East not unwelcome to the Czar, the growing influ- ence of England in the Levant was beginning to fill him with anxiety. Eussia could not afford to see her own prestige completely overshadowed by that of a Power which was already recognised as her great rival in the East. During the moment of supreme peril, when Ibra- him stood on the heights above Nauplia, in July 1825, the Greek ]Mational Assembly had offered to place Hellas formally under British protection. Canning had refused; but at the same time his policy had now become so markedly favourable to the Greeks, that Lord Strangford, the Turcophile ambassador at Con- stantinople, resigned.^ He w^as replaced by Stratford Canning (Lord Stratford de Redcliffe), to whom in- structions were given to enter into relations with the Hellenic Government. In January 1826 a conference took place between the British ambassador and repre- sentatives of Greece at Perivolakia, opposite the island of Hydra. The Greeks, discouraged by the unfavour- able turn the war had taken, were at this time prepared to consider the Russian proposal of vassal States. Canning now determined once more to open direct negotiations with the Czar, of whose favourable dis- position he had been previously assured in some pri- 1 Prokesch, i. 266. 246 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ; vate conversations with Baron Lieven, the Russian am- bassador in London. In March 1826, accordingly, the Duke of TV ellington was sent to St. Petersburg to con- gratulate the Czar on his accession, and at the same time to invite him to take part in some joint demon- stration on behalf of Greece. The English proposal placed the Czar in a some- what awkward position. Only a few days before, on the 17th of March, he had sent an ultimatum to the Porte demanding, with the threat of war in case of refusal, the immediate despatch of plenipotentiaries to Russia to discuss certain grievances of which the Czar's Government had to complain. It was possible, of course, that the Sultan might reject the ultimatum. If, however, he were to accept it, it would be diffi- cult for the Czar immediately to advance a new and entirely different series of claims. In spite of this objection, however, Mcholas, on the 4th of xipril, and before the answer of the Porte accepting the ultima- tum arrived, signed the so-called Protocol of St. Peters- burg, according to which England was empowered to offer to the Ottoman Government a settlement of the Hellenic question based on the terms agreed to by the Greek representatives at Perivolakia, Russia in any case promising her support.^ The publication of this protocol produced a perfect 1 Holland, p. 5. DESTRUCTION OF THE JANISSARIES ^47 storm of indignation. The Sultan, having accepted the Enssian nltimatum, naturally resented the sudden intrusion of an entirely fresh demand; and Metter- nicli, who stigmatised the protocol as a compound of feebleness and folly,^ encouraged the Porte to resist. Sultan Mahmoud's stubborn temper, indeed, showed no signs of yielding; and at Constantinople the prep- arations for the long-projected reforms in the organ- isation of the army were pushed forward with new vigour. The measures taken to achieve this recoiled on the Ottoman Government itself. On the 15th of June, the Janissaries, whose old-established privileges were most aifected by the reforms, rose in open insur- rection. Their opposition had, however, been fore- seen. They were overwhelmed by masses of Anato- lian troops, whom the Sultan had collected in the cap- ital for the purpose, driven back into their barracks, and there cut down to a man. Sultan Mahmoud was thus rid at a stroke of those proud and turbulent war- riors who for centuries had played in Constantinople tlie part of the Praetorian guards at Pome. But, though he was now free to pursue his schemes of mili- tary reform, the destruction of the Janissaries had se- riously weakened his available forces; and he found 1 ' Une oeuvre pleine de faiblesse et de ridicule.' — ^Nfetter- nich to Baron Ottenfels. Prokesch, Appendix, vii. 11. 248 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE himself compelled, in spite of the new demands of tlie Czar, to send his representatives, in accordance with the Russian ultimatum, to meet those of Russia at Akkerman. Here, on the 26th of October, an arrange- ment was come to by which Turkey granted all the de- mands of Russia with regard to certain outstanding questions in Servia and Roumania, the navigation of the Dardanelles and Bosphorus, and the handing over of some Circassian fortresses. During all this time the British ambassador to the Porte had refrained from presenting the Protocol of St. Petersburg, though as early as May the Sultan had received private intimation of its contents. Mean- while there had been an active interchange of views between the European Cabinets, and the situation had been to a considerable extent modified. Metternich still took up an irreconcilable attitude; Prussia only agreed to co-operate in case of a complete unanimity of the Powers; but France, where the Catholic zeal of Charles X. inclined him to emulate St. Louis in for- warding a crusade against the infidel, had agreed to support the protocol.^ In the spring of 1827 further conferences took place in London, in which Austria consented to take part. But when Metternich found that he could not 1 Baron de Damas to Lord Granville. Prokesch, Appen- dix, vii. 27. THE TREATY OP LONDON 249 influence the decision of the other Powers, he with- drew his representative in wrath. On April 4, 1827, tlie British and Russian ambassadors handed to the Grand Yizier the joint protocol of the Powers. The Yizier, in the name of the Sultan, angrily re- fused to admit the right of foreign governments to interfere between the Sultan and his subjects, and, in view of the Treaty of Akkerman, complained bitterly of this new move on the part of Russia. The protocol having been thus refused, it became necessary to pro- ceed a step further; and, on the initiative of France, the Protocol of St. Petersburg was, on the 6th of July, converted into tlie Treaty of London, by which the contracting parties bound themselves to secure the autonomy of Greece, under the suzerainty of the Sul- tan, but without breaking off friendly relations with the Porte. ^ For this purpose the fleets of the three allied Powers were, under Admirals Codrington, de Rigny, and von Heyden, to establish a blockade of the Morea against all Turkish and Egyptian ships, and thus to compel Ibrahim to return to Egypt. The intention of using force was disclaimed, but, as without this the attainment of the object of the blockade seemed doubtful, a wide discretion was left to the admirals. The ambassadors of the three Powers were still 1 For the text, of. Holland, p. 7. 250 THE WAE OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE in Constantinople, and on the 16th of August they presented to the Porte a final note, calling on the Otto- man Government to arrange an armistice with the Greeks, and threatening, in case of refusal, to take any measures necessary to enforce it/ The Porte hesitated for a moment in face of the determined atti- tude of the Powers, and Metternich used the moment's delay for a last desperate diplomatic move. The death of Canning, too, which took place on the 8th of Au- gust, promised to modify the policy of England, and gave him some hope of still being able to reconstruct the shattered edifice of his diplomacy. He proposed to the Porte that Turkey should solicit the good offices of Austria for a settlement of her differences with the other Powers.^ The Ottoman Government, glad of any chance of retiring with dignity from a dangerous attitude, or of any pretext for delay, hesitated for a while, and finally, on the 20th of October, accepted the Austrian proposal. But it was too late. At mid- day on this same 20th of October, Admiral Codring- ton had sailed his fieet into the bay of JSTavarino, and before nightfall the proud armada of the Mussulmans, which was to have crushed out the last spark of Hel- lenic liberty, was drifting a mere tangled mass of broken wreckage on the face of the waters. 1 Prokesch, Appendix, viii. 29. 2 /&. viii. 32. CHAPTER XV 111 success of the Greeks at sea — Junction of the Egyptian and Turkish fleets at Navarino — Abortive expedition of Cochrane to Alexandria — Increase of piracy — Victory of Cochrane off Cape Papas — Intervention of the allied Ad- mirals — Armistice accepted by the Greeks and rejected by the Turks — Codrington at Navarino — Convention with Ibrahim — Renewed activity of the Greeks — Captain Hastings in the Gulf of Corinth — Destruction of a Turk- ish flotilla at Salona — Ibrahim sails from Navarino — Ac- tion of Codrington — The allied fleets enter the Bay of Navarino — The battle of Navarino At sea the events of the year 1827 had hitherto been as indecisive as on land. Lord Cochrane had done nothing to retrieve the disastrous impression produced by the fiasco before Athens. He was unable to prevent a Turkish fleet of twenty-eight sail joining, on the 14th of May, the Egyptian fleet in the harbour of j^avarino. A vigorous naval demonstration off Patras, in connec- tion with the movements of Kolokotrones, would prob- ably now have been his best policy. He preferred, however, to play a more venturesome game, and to 251 252 THE WAE OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE sail on an enterprise which could only have been justi- fied by brilliant success. At the beginning of June he put to sea with a squadron of twenty-two war vessels and six fire-ships, without letting it be known what was his destination. 'Not till he had passed the island of Crete did he inform his captains that it was his inten- tion to sail for Alexandria and attempt to destroy the fleet which Mehemet Ali was now fitting out in order to enable Ibraham to crush the last remnants of the Greek sea-power. On the 17th of June Cochrane ap- peared off Alexandria. The Egyptians were utterly taken by surprise, and the guard-ship at the mouth of the port was destroyed before it could make its escape. Had the Greeks at once sailed boldly into the har- bour, it is possible that they might have succeeded in destroying the Egyptian fleet, which was but half equipped and quite unprepared for an engagement. Failure, however, would have meant utter destruc- tion; and Cochrane did not venture to risk his ships through the narrow entrance to the port. He con- tented himself with hovering about outside; while Mehemet in person, furious at the insult to his capital, pressed on the armament of his ships, and, as soon as they were ready, stood out to sea to punish the pre- sumption of the Greeks. These, however, did not care to risk an engagement with Mehemet's superior INTERVENTION OF THE ADMIRALS 253 force, and made all sail for Greece, pursued for some distance by the Egyptians. This second fiasco de- stroyed what survived of Cochrane's prestige. The Greeks, weary of their continued ill-success at sea, took once more, with increased zest, to piracy pure and sim- ple. It was reckoned that, at this time, more than a quarter of the population were engaged, in one way or another, in this lucrative pursuit. ^ Piracy,' said the ^ Spectateur d' Orient,' ^ is the only complete and sys- tematised organisation which the Revolution of '21 has as yet produced.' At last, however, on the 1st of August, Cochrane did succeed in winning a victory at sea. Off Cape Papas he fell in Avith an Egyptian corvette and schooner, which he captured after a sharp engagement, and towed in triumph into the harbour of Nauplia. The eff'ect of this success, the last achieved by the Greeks before the intervention of the Powers in the war, was heightened by the news which immediately followed. On the 11th of August the terms of the Treaty of London w^ere communicated to the French and Eng- lish admirals at Smyrna. Admirals Codrington and de Rigny were now empowered to interpose in the war, and part the combatants, ^ if possible, with trum- pets; if necessary, with cannon.' The island of Melos 254 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE was fixed upon as the place of rendezvous for the al- lied fleets; and meanwhile Codrington sailed to ]^au- plia to inform the Greek Government of the decision of the Powers. The news was received by the Greeks with the wildest demonstrations of delight; and there was no need to use any threat of force to induce them to agree to the armistice. In the present crisis of its fortunes the Hellenic Government was only too glad to accept the intervention of the Powers, and, on the advice of the British admiral, once more transferred its seat to the island of /Egina, in order to escape from the terrorism of the factions, and to have a free hand in dealing with the foreign representatives. Meanwhile the armistice, accepted by the Greeks, had been rejected by the Turks with scorn. The Porte, indeed, refused to believe that the Powers were in earnest, or that, in the last resort, they would appeal to force. At Constantinople a solemn farce was en- acted to proclaim to all the world at once the deter- mination and the clemency of the Sultan. The Greek Patriarch was compelled formally to implore the Im- perial forgiveness for such of the revolted provinces as had already submitted, and the prayer was ostenta- tiously granted. At the same time, a powerful arma- ment was fitted out to proceed to the reduction of the islands of Hydra and Spezzia. Mehemet Ali, too, had CODRINGTON AND IBRAHIM 255 now completed his great armada of ninety-two ships, fifty-one of them vessels of war; and, on the 7th of September, this sailed into the harbour of ISTavarino, raising the number of the Turko-Egyptian fleet in the bay to a hundred and twenty-six sail. Five days later Admiral Codrington, who had been unable to intercept the Egyptian fleet, arrived off Xavarino. He at once informed the Turkish ad- miral of the terms of the Treaty of London, and told him that any attempt on the part of the Turko-Egyp- tian fleet to leave the bay would be undertaken at its peril. Ibrahim, informed by the Capitan Bey of Ad- miral Codrington's ultimatum, took time to think; and, pending the arrival of the French admiral, no further action was taken. On the 22nd of September, Admiral de Kigny arrived, and on the 25th a confer- ence was arranged with the Egyptian commander-in- chief. The instructions of the admirals were precise ; and Ibrahim, on his side, professed himself unable to decide anything until he had received instructions from Constantinople. It was calculated that it would take twenty-five days for these to arrive, and during this period Ibrahim agreed to keep his fleet in the har- bour of jSTavarino, and to undertake no operations against Hydra or Spezzia. Small squadrons were, how- ever, to be allowed to leave the bay in order to commu- 256 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE nicate with Siida and Patras. The admirals now be- lieved that Ibrahim would yield, and that a demon- stration in force would be sufficient to induce the Egyptian fleet to withdraw to Alexandria, without the need of having recourse to more violent measures. A couple of guard-ships were left to watch the entrance to the bay, and the allied fleet withdrew, de Rigny sailing to Elaphonesos, and Codrington, after dispatch- ing a few of his ships to Malta, going northward to watch the proceedings of Cochrane, who was now cruis- ing off the coast of Epirus. The situation was now in the highest degree pecul- iar and strained. The Greeks, having accepted the armistice which the Ottomans had refused, now had the allies on their side ; and, while Ibrahim's fleet was detained in forced inactivity in the harbour of Xa- varino, they were straining every nerve to make the best of the favourable conditions which the Sultan's obstinacy had created for them. The Turks com- plained bitterly that, while the armistice was enforced upon them, the Greeks were allowed a perfectly free hand, and that the allies, while affecting impartiality, were, in fact, actively engaged on the side of Greece. This, indeed, to all intents and purposes, was actually the case. Yet, Greece having willingly accepted the armistice, it would have been absurd to have insisted EENEWED ACTIVITY OF THE GREEKS 257 on her remaining passive, while the Ottomans contin- ued the war. As long, therefore, as the Turks main- tained their present attitude, the Greeks could reap, unhindered, the full benefit of the coercive measures of the Powers, which were necessarily directed against that side only which had proved refractory. Under these circumstances the war was carried on by the Greeks with renewed activity. An expe- dition under Colonel Fabvier was sent to the long- suffering island of Chios. Kriezotis and Karatasos were commissioned to stir up a rebellion in Thessaly and Macedonia. Crete was blockaded; and 2,000 Greek troops were landed at Grabusa to attempt once more to fan into a llame the slumbering embers of re- volt. In Western Hellas several chiefs of Armatoli were again in arms ; and an expedition was sent, under Church and Cochrane, to make an effort to reduce Mis- solonghi, and obtain a foothold in Albania. The enterprises of Kriezotis and of Fabvier ended in quarrels and failure, the renewed rising of the Cretans only in some months of useless bloodshed. The expedition of Church and Cochrane, on the other hand, was of more importance, not only in its direct achievements, but because it led immediately to the active intervention of the allied fleet. The plan was for Church to advance, with a small 258 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE army of 1,400 men, from the Isthmus of Corinth along the coast of the Gulf. Cochrane, meanwhile, with a squadron of twenty-three ships, was to sail round the Peloponnese, and, forming a junction with Church, to carry him over to Western Hellas. On the 10th of September Cochrane anchored before Missolonghi. Codrington, however, who, as stated above, had sailed up from ]^avarino to watch his movements, forbade him to disembark in Albania; and the original plan of campaign had therefore to be abandoned. Cochrane had to content himself with bombarding the fort of Yasilidi, without, however, producing any impression. He then returned to Syra in the Cyclades, leaving Cap- tain Hastings, with a small squadron, to join Church in the Gulf of Corinth. Besides his own vessel, the steamship Karteria, Hastings had under his command the SoteVy com- manded by Captain Thomas, a couple of schooners and two gimboats. On the 23rd of September the Soter, accompanied by the schooners and gunboats, ran the gauntlet of the forts of Rhium, through the ^ little Dardanelles,' under a hot fire. Hastings followed soon after in the Karteria, without suffering any damage, and proceeded to reconnoitre the hostile fleet, which was lying at anchor under the guns of several shore batteries at Salona. He found it to consist of ACTION OFF SALONA 259 eleven ships, five of them large, and including a schooner of sixteen and a brig of fourteen guns. On the 30th of September he sailed to attack the Turkish fleet with the Karteria, the Sot €7% and a couple of gun- boats. The Ottomans made no effort to avoid the en- gagements; indeed, their main anxiety was lest the Greek squadron should discover the immense disparity of their forces in time to escape what they supposed would be their total destruction. Hastings anchored the Karteria about five hundred yards from the shore, under a furious fire from the Turkish ships and bat- teries; while the rest of his little flotilla remained about two hundred yards further out. He proceeded with the greatest coolness and deliberation. Some rounds of cold shot were first fired from the small can- non, in order to discover the exact range. This having been done, Hastings loaded the long guns and carron- ades with bombs and red-hot balls, and poured in a murderous fire on the Turks. The effect was instan- taneous. A shot entered the magazine of the Turkish commodore, and blew him into the air; a brig was sunk, one schooner burnt, and another driven ashore; and within half an hour the Ottoman fleet was com- pletely destroyed. The gunboats now ran in shore and silenced the Turkish batteries; and an attempt was made to haul off the stranded schooner. This, how- 260 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ever, liad to be abandoned, as tbe woods near the sbore were occupied by Albanian sbarp-sliooters, wlio pre- vented any one from approaching the vessel. It was thereupon bombarded from a distance; and the work of destruction was complete. This victory gave the Greeks once more the com- mand of the Gulf of Corinth, and opened up their communications between the Morea and the mainland. Its importance, however, lay not so much in its imme- diate military as in its ultimate political effects; for it was the news of the career of Captain Hastings in the Gulf of Corinth, and of the destruction of the Ot- toman squadron at Salona, which brought to a head the quarrel between Ibrahim and the admirals, and so led directly to the catastrophe of I^avarino. In view of the destructive activity of the Greeks, Ibrahim held himself to be no longer bound by the verbal agreement entered into on the 25th of Sep- tember; and he determined to send a strong squadron to the Gulf to avenge the defeat at Salona, and put a stop to the proceedings of Hastings. On the 1st of October the frigate Dartmouth^ which had been left to watch the Turkish fleet in N'avarino, signalled the departure of a Mussulman squadron; and from the heights of Zante thirty Turkish warships were pres- ently seen sailing, with a fair wind, in a north-westerly i IBRAHIM SAILS FROM NAVARINO 261 direction. This was the first division of the Egyptian fleet, under Mustapha Bey, bound for Patras. In spite of a high sea that was running, Codrington at once put out from Zante in pursuit, and on the following day placed himself between the Turks and the Gulf of Patras. He now sent word to the Ottoman Admiral that he would fire on the first vessel trying to pass, and forced him to turn back, the British fleet accompany- ing him as far as the southern point of the island of Zante. On the evening of the 3rd the second division of the Ottoman fleet, consisting of three frigates, four corvettes, and seven brigs, was signalled. On board one of the frigates Ibrahim himself was present; the other two were commanded by Tahir Pasha and Mo- hurrem Bey. After exchanging signals with Musta- pha, this division also prepared to return to ^avarino. Meanwhile, however, a stiff south-westerly wind had arisen against which it was impossible to beat up; and on the morning of the 4th three frigates and a number of smaller ships were still ofl' Cape Papas, and endeav- ouring to make for Patras. Codrington now once more, in the teeth of the gale, w^ent in pursuit. On the evening of the same day he overhauled the Turks, and, accusing Ibrahim of a gross breach of his word, threatened force if they did not at once return. Tahir replied that the truce had applied only to Hydra, and 262 THE WAK OF GKEEK INDEPENDENCE not to Patras; and Codrington now proceeded to fire on the foremost Ottoman sliips, wliicli had not hoisted their colours, and drove them back. In the night the gale increased to a hurricane, and both fleets were scat- tered. " Ibrahim, however, made no further attempt to reach Patras, and returned to I^avarino. On his arrival he found the expected instructions from the Porte awaiting him. These, so far from counselling him to yield to the demands of the ad- mirals, ordered him to redouble his exertions for the reduction of the Morea, and promised him the speedy support of Kiutayeh. ISTothing could have better pleased the Egyptian commander-in-chief in his pres- ent temper; and, without delaying a day, he proceed- ed to wreak the consuming wrath, which he was powerless to exercise on the hated admirals, on the al- ready thrice devastated country. The British officers watched from their ships the columns of flame and smoke which were the signal to the Powers of the Ot- toman defiance. As such, indeed, it was understood by Admiral Codrington. On the 13th, the Eussian admiral, Count Heyden, and the Prench admiral, de Pigny, arrived off IN'avarino; and the allied fleet was now complete. The British squadron numbered eleven, including three line-of-battle ships and four frigates, ULTIMATUM OF THE ADMIRALS 263 tlie Frencli seven, with three line-of-battle ships and two frigates, the Kussian eight, of which four were line-of-battle ships, and two frigates. The total num- ber of guns amounted to one thousand two hundred and seventy. A council of war was at once held, and it was decided to send an ultimatum to the Egyptian com- mander-in-chief. To continue a pacific blockade of tlie coast seemed, under the circumstances, useless; and even this it would soon be impossible to main- tain, with the approach of winter, on a coast exposed to the fury of every storm that blew. The admirals had been allowed a wide margin for the use of their own discretion, and luckily Codrington, the senior in command, was not one to shrink from responsibility. The ultimatum now presented to Ibrahim de- manded fresh securities, the return home of the Turk- ish and Egyptian fleets, the prompt cessation of hostil- ities in the interior, and the evacuation of the Morea. The only reply received by the admirals was through Ibrahim's dragoman, who said that his master was away in the interior, and that it was impossible to con- vey any message to him. This sounded unsatisfactory enough; and on the 18th another council of war was held, in order to arrive at a final decision. It was now determined, as the blockade from with- 264 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE out had failed, that the allied fleet should make a fur- ther demonstration by sailing into the harbour, and it was hoped that this, combined with renewed represen- tations to the Ottoman commander, might persuade the Turks that it was to their own interest to yield. But in spite of the pacific tone of the decision, Cod- rington was under no delusion as to the result of this move. He had already, on the 17th, had the harbour reconnoitred; and he now made every disposition for the eventuality of a fight, assigning to each ship its place in the line of battle, and concluding his general orders with the famous words of Lord ITelson that * no captain can do wrong who lays his ship alongside that of an enemy.' The harbour of ^avarino is formed by a large bay, three miles in length by about two in breadth. It is protected to the west by the celebrated island of Sphakteria, and only open to the sea at its south-west- ern end, where it is entered by a channel some three quarters of a mile in width. The northern end of Sphakteria is separated from the mainland only by a narrow and shallow channel. The Turkish fleet was anchored in the line of the bay, facing the entrance, forming rather more than a half circle, and having its extremities protected by the fortress of ^avarino on the one side and the bat- THE ALLIED FLEET ENTERS THE BAY 265 teries of Sphakteria on tlie other. The ships, eighty- two in number, were arranged in a triple line, in such a way that the gaps in the front row were filled by those in the rear; and, on each flank of the foremost line, which consisted of twenty-two of the largest ves- sels, were posted three fire-ships. Though greatly su- perior both in number of ships and guns to the allied squadrons, the Ottoman fleet was inferior in the size of its vessels, there being only three line-of -battle ships as compared with the ten of the allies. At about half -past one o'clock on the afternoon of the 20th, Admiral Codrington's flag-ship sailed into the harbour, followed by the whole of the allied fleet. As the entrance was too narrow to allow of any other formation than line ahead in passing in, the batteries commanding the mouth of the bay might, at the outset, have done great execution on the allied ships as they sailed past. ^N'ot a gun was fired, however, and it al- most seemed as though the affair might, after all, have a peaceful termination. Without a sign of resistance being offered, the French and British ships took up the positions assigned to them, dropping their an- chors and turning their broadsides to the enemy; and even the Russian fleet, though delayed an hour by a sudden dropping of the breeze, had plenty of time to take its place in the line. 266 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE The DartmoiitJi was now ordered by the British admiral to request the removal of a fire-ship, which was stationed to windward of the English flag-ship; and on the Turks refusing to alter its position, a boat was sent to cut its cables, and tow it aside. The at- tempt to do this was resisted by the Ottomans with vol- leys of musketry, and a French and an English ship answered with their guns. Admiral Codrington now sent a boat to carry a remonstrance to the Turkish admiral; but the boat was fired on, and the bullet struck the flag-ship. The battle now became general. From the point of view of naval science the fight at l^avarino has little importance, for cooped up within the limits of a narrow bay, there was no room for the display of tactics or seamanship. It was a mere ques- tion of ^ hard pounding; ' and sound discipline and good practice at the guns were the factors which deter- mined the victory. It was not long doubtful on which side this lay. For two hours the cannonade continued, while, from the amphitheatre of hills around, twenty thousand of Ibrahim's troops watched the struggle. At the end of this time the flag-ship of the Capitan Bey and that of Mohurrem, which had been engaged by the Asia, cut their cables and drifted to leeward. Others of the Turks now began to follow suit, or fired BATTLE OF NAVARINO 267 and abandoned their ships; and by the evening the Turkish fleet was completely destroyed/ The allies remained in the bay all night, experienc- ing considerable difficulty in saving their own ships from the burning wrecks which were drifting amongst them in every direction. In the morning it was found that, of all the Ottoman fleet, only twenty-nine vessels were still afloat. The whole bay was littered with a blackened and blood-stained tangle of broken wreck- age, and with the mutilated remains of the poor wretches who had perished in the explosions of the Turkish ships; while the sea for some distance round was red with human gore. The loss of the allies had been comparatively slight, not more than five hundred and forty being killed or wounded ; but of the Mussul- mans no less than six thousand had perished. 1 M. B. i. 487. Codrington's despatch is g-iven in full in Prokesch, Appendix, viii. 36. CHAPTEE XYI The consequences of the battle of Navarino — The allied fleets retire to refit — Ibrahim remains firm — Effect of the battle on the Powers — Kussia proposes a joint ul- timatum to the Porte — Weak and vacillating- policy of England — Lord Dudley's note to the Porte — Policy of Welling-ton — Effect of the battle at Constantinople — The Porte demands compensation — Withdrawal of the ambassadors — The Sultan proclaims a Holy War — Treaty of Akkermann declared void — Kussia declares war, and occupies the Principalities. The battle of E'avarino was important rather for its diplomatic than for its immediate military effects. Ibrahim, who had arrived in time to witness the de- struction of the last of his fleet, is reported merely to have laughed grimly at the sight; and he exhibited, after as before the catastrophe, the same unshaken resolution. The allied admirals, immediately after the fight, renewed their demand that the Egyptians should evacuate the Morea, and threatened serious consequences in case of refusal. In spite, however, of the object lesson of the smoking wreck of his fleet 268 ATTITUDE OF IBRAHIM 269 scattered in the bay beneath his eyes, Ibrahim replied by stating his intention of remaining, until such time as he should be ordered to leave by his master the Sultan. The admirals were in no condition to enforce their fresh ultimatum. The ships of the allied fleet had suffered much in the battle, and it was necessary for them to refit ; and for this purpose the British and llussian squadrons now sailed to Malta, the French to Toulon. For Ibrahim, indeed, the destruction of his fleet had for the moment brought a sensible relief. It is true that his elaborate plans for the reduction of the Greek islands had been shattered; but, on the other hand, he was now freed from the_intolerable presence of the admirals ; a great deal of diplomatic fog which had hitherto obscured his path had been cleared away; and he was able to do his duty to the Ottoman cause without being hampered by considerations of interna- tional policy. He accordingly set to work without de- lay to make arrangements for passing the winter in the Morea. With care, he could hope to make his avail- able stores hold out till the next harvest, even should it be impossible to receive supplies from abroad. Of the surviving Turkish ships he made use to embark the sick, the wounded, and useless mouths generally, for Alexandria, and at the same time to forward several 270 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE tliousands of Greek captives for the supply of the slave markets of Egypt/ AVhile the Egyptian leader was thus preparing, under adverse circumstances, to maintain his position in the Peloponnese, the news of JSTavarino had pro- duced the most opposite effects upon the Cabinets and peoples of Europe. Metternich, giving voice to the opinions of the court of Vienna, denounced the action of the allied admirals as an unparalleled outrage, the destruction of the Ottoman fleet as an act of piracy and murder. In England the account of Admiral Codrington's action was received with very mixed feelings. To the weak Cabinet of Lord Goderich, which in a half-hearted manner had continued the policy of Canning, it was wholly unwelcome. They had babbled of peace, of friendly intervention, and pacific demonstrations; and now the prophecies of Metternich had come true, and they found themselves plunged, by the ^ indiscretion ' of the British admiral, and contrary to their desires or convictions, into war — and war, moreover, with the Power which it had hitherto been the policy of England to support, as the great barrier against the aggressive and ambitious 1 The fact that the British admiral did nothing- to pre- vent this was made, later on, the pretext for depriving him of his command. RECEPTIOIi OF THE NEWS IN PARIS 271 schemes of Russia. By the Tories, and the Tory press, the action of the allied admirals was denounced in no measured terms. The Times and the Morning Post ^ referred to it as an outrage on a friendly Power, as worse than a crime, as a blunder, which had made the English fleet the instrument for the aggrandise- ment of Eussia. It was argued at large whether Cod- rington should be rewarded, or tried by court martial; and though he did ultimately receive his G.C.B., the arguments by which his claims were supported sounded rather like a defence than a panegyric. Meanwhile the news had been received in France with open, and in Eussia wdth ill-concealed, delight. In France, indeed, the Government of Charles X. had stood greatly in need of a little military glory to fur- bish up its tarnished reputation. Where it had been thought necessary to teach in the schools that ISTapo- leon Bonaparte was a royalist general, who had gained victories for the monarchy during the temporary ab- sence of the king from France, a real military success, won under the auspices of the Bourbon dynasty, could not but be welcome; and while the vanity of the French was flattered by the revived dream of military glory, Eussia found it hard to disguise her satisfaction at a ' regrettable event ' which had destroyed at a 1 Prokesch, ii. 275 &c., gives several articles in full. 272 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE blow the entire sea-power of a nation with which she was then preparing, on her own account, to go to war. Kussia, indeed, proposed to the allied Powers that the work of Navarino should be completed by pre- senting to the Porte a joint ultimatum embodying the terms of the Treaty of London/ The English Cabi- net, however, seemed utterly incapable of taking any vigorous action. There can be no doubt that its true policy would have been to have accepted the victory of ^Navarino as a fait accompli, and pushed it to its logical conclusion. Had the combined fleets, after de- stroying the Ottoman navy, forced the Dardanelles, and dictated terms in common to the Sultan under the walls of Constantinople, not only would two years of bloodshed have been avoided, but England would have been spared the blow to her prestige in the East which was dealt by the separate action of Russia. In spite of the bloody barrier of ^N'avarino, how- ever, the British Government still affected to believe in the possibility of maintaining amicable relations with the Porte. "VYhile France was willing enough to sup- port Russia, Lord Dudley, on behalf of England, re- plied to the Russian note, that the Treaty of London 1 t)espatch of Count Nesselrode. Prokesch, Appendix, ix. 1. ATTITUDE OF THE BRITISH GOVERNMENT 273 was peaceful in its intentions, and that only peaceful means should be used to enforce it/ In the King's speech, in 1828, the action of the admirals was referred to as ' an untoward event,' which, however, it was Jioped would not disturb the harmony of the relations between His Majesty's Government and that of the Sultan; ^ and to the Porte itself representations were made justifying Admiral Codrington's action on the ground that the Turks had themselves been the aggressors. When the Ottoman Government very naturally inquired by what right the allied fleet had entered the harbour of ]^avarino, at all, the reply was ' by the right which every fleet has to enter a friendly port in time of peace ! ' The British ministers were in fact bound hand and foot to a policy which they hated. Even while Goderich was still at the head of affairs. Lord Dudley had con- fessed to the Austrian minister that he considered the Treaty of London an iniquity, but an iniquity in which it was unfortunately, for the present, necessary to per- severe; ^ and when, in January 1828, the Duke of Wellington succeeded Goderich at the head of the Government, the policy of Canning was committed to the hands of a statesman who had hated him as a 1 Note of Lord Dudley. Prokesch, Appendix, ix. 3. 2 Hansard, xviii. 3. 3 Mendelssohn, i. 491. 18 274 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE revolutionist, and who was heart and soul devoted to the methods of Metternich. Under these circumstances it is hardly surprising that the policy of the English Government, after Xavarino, Avas to the last degTee vacillating and weak. They had neither the courage to throw over the Treaty of London, nor the will to make it effec- tive in the only way possible. In the words of Baron von Prokesch-Osten, they sought to undo the ' evil ' to which they had been appointed the unwilling heirs, * not by soaring above the treaty, but by lagging as far as possible behind it.^ That Greece was not ruined by their timid and unsympathetic policy was due to the uncompromising attitude of the Porte, which gave Russia the pretext which she desired for interfering single-handed in the affairs of the East. The news of the battle of ^N'avarino reached the ambassadors of the Powers at Constantinople, through a private channel, before it was known to the Porte. They immediately went to the Grand Yizier, and put to him as an abstract question, what the atti- tude of the Ottoman Government would be in the event of the allied fleets using force against the navy of Ibrahim. The Yizier replied, diplomatically, that it was impossible to name an unborn child of w^hich the sex was unknown. Yf hen, however, the Porte had EFFECT AT CONSTANTINOPLE 275 received official news of the destruction of its fleet, lie told them that he could only describe it as a revolt- ing outrage, for which redress would be demanded/ The Ottoman Government thereupon lodged with the ambassadors a claim for compensation, and a demand for an apology. Both were refused, even by the Brit* ish Government, on the ground that, however deplor- able the affair may have been, the Turks had been the actual aggressors. Some further futile pourparlers followed; but, in the end, the breach with the Porte was complete ; and the ambassadors of the allied Pow- ers were withdrawn from Constantinople.^ At the same time all British, French, and Kussian subjects were ordered to leave the Ottoman dominions; and twelve thousand Catholic Armenians were banished to Angora. The sole offence of these unfortunate people was that they owed obedience to the Pope, that ' swine ' who pretended to be the vicegerent on earth of the prophet Jesus, and might, therefore, be reason- ably suspected of being devoted to the interests of the * Franks.' When the Yizier was remonstrated with for tearing these unfortunates in mid-winter from their homes and occupations, he merely replied, with a sardonic smile, ^ After all. Angora is not Siberia ! ' ^ In the breast of Sultan Mahmoud himself the news 1 Mendelssohn, i. 495. 2 Prokesch, ii. 199. s ibid. ii. 202. 276 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE of tlie destruction of his fleet had stirred up a devour- ing wrath, which was only with difficulty restrained during the first negotiations with the Powers. As soon as the ambassadors had retired, and the necessity for an affected moderation of tone was past, it burst forth with unrestrained violence. On the 20th of De- cember a solemn Uatti-sheriff was issued, calling on the Moslemin to rise for the defence of Islam, which the Christian Powers had united to destroy. The cruelty as well as the perfidy of the European Govern- ments was enlarged upon, who, with hypocritical pro- fessions of friendship on their lips, had done to death, in time of peace, six thousand of the true believers. Russia especially was singled out for denunciation; and the Treaty of Akkermann, which had recently been concluded with her, was declared null and void. Finally, it was announced that, in the defence of the faith, the followers of the prophet reckoned nothing of the odds that might be arrayed against them, feel- ing secure in the righteousness of their cause and in the protection of the Almighty.^ Nothing could have been more welcome to Russia than this outburst; for the formal abrogation of the Treaty of Akkermann by the Porte gave her the pretext which she desired for going to war with 1 Prokesch, Appendix, viii. 44. RUSSIA DECLARES WAR ON TURKEY 277 Turkey on her own account. The working out of the Treaty of London ^ by peaceful means ' she was quite willing to leave to the other members of the Triple Alliance. The ruin of the Ottoman sea-power at Navarino had given her the undisputed mastery of the Black Sea; the dying flame of the Greek revolt could be fed into new life by Kussian subsidies, and form a diversion in the south; while Kussia, unham- pered by allies, established herself in the Balkan penin- sula. In the Mediterranean, where military operations would have been costly and difficult, Russia readily consented to be bound by the terms of the Treaty of London. In return, France willingly, and England not without considerable misgiving, were prepared to let her have a free hand elsew^here. The reply then of Russia to the Hatti-sJieriff, was the declaration of her intention to occupy the Danubian principalities. Metternich's nightmare had come true, and the end of all the sentimental interference in the affairs of Greece was to be the aggrandisement of Russia in the east of Europe. The Austrian statesman, indeed, still made des- perate efforts to avert the catastrophe. He enlarged to the Porte, through his representative at Con- stantinople, on the suicidal folly of its attitude, and besought it to modify its tone. The Grand Vizier 278 THE WAR OF GEEEK INDEPENDENCE replied, moodily, that it seemed tliat Austria too would soon be numbered among tlie enemies of Islam; but the importunity of Metternich so far prevailed, that the Ottoman Government was induced to explain away the Hatti-sheriff, and even to consent to open negotiations on the basis of the Treaty of London. But it was too late. Eussia had no desire to come to terms; and on the 6th of May her army crossed the Pruth. For Greece, then, the direct result of the Battle of jSTavarino was that, after years of waiting and struggle, the great Orthodox power, from which in the early days of the revolution so much had been ex- pected, had at last come to her rescue, none the less effectually that her motives were entirely selfish. Af- ter years of heroic effort, the Hellenes had begun to despair of success. Everywhere, in the islands, on the continent, and in the Morea, the Turks had once more gained the upper hand; the means for further resist- ance were exhausted; the heroes of the first hopeful years were dead ; the reckless enthusiasm of the people crushed out under the accumulated weight of their misfortunes. Indeed, the very people whom it was desired to free seemed no longer to exist. Of the once thriving population nothing was visible to the passing traveller, but here and there, some hollow-eyed shad- EFFECT ON THE PROSPECTS OF THE GREEKS 279 ows, wandering miserably among the ruins of burnt villages or tlie blackened stumps of the devastated orchards. J^ow, however, a new ray of hope shone through the lowering clouds of the national misfort- unes. "With the Powers of Europe arrayed on her side against the Porte, with Eussia actively fighting her battles, there seemed no cause for despair; and Greece could look forward once more with confidence into the future. And to whom was it due that she had been saved from the fate which seemed to her children more dreadful than death? Lord Salisbury in a recent speech declared that the very existence of Greece as a nation was due to the Concert of the Powers. Yet nothing can be more certain than that, if the question had been left to the Cabinets of Europe alone, Greece would never have been freed. Metternich was the typical statesman of the period, the ideal of all the chanceries of Europe; and to Metternich the diplo- matic proprieties were of infinitely more importance tlian any national aspirations whatever; and no claims of abstract justice could be allowed for a moment to interfere with the rules of haute politique.^ It was, as a matter of fact, to the peoples of Europe, and not 1 ^Metternich's jnclgrnent as to the result of interfering" on behalf of the Greeks proved true enoug-h. His capital error, politically speaking-, lay in his underrating" sentiment and public opinion as factors to be considered. 280 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE to their governments, that Greece owed her liberty. The battle of Navarino was the master stroke that cut the Gordian knot of her troubles; yet not one of the allied monarchs, not even I^icholas, would have vent- ured to give his admiral the order to fight. ' It was the public opinion of Europe which forced the unwill- ing courts into a peaceful intervention, and then swept away the admirals into their deed of blood at IN^ava- rino. Philhellenism had shown that it w^as no mere dream of pious enthusiasts, but a power; and while, astonished and thunderstruck, the Cabinets kept si- lence, the peoples rejoiced, and a deep sigh of satis- faction rose from all Christendom.' ^ 1 Mendelssohn Bartholdy, i. 488, CHAPTER XYII The arrival of Capodistrias in Greece — Enthusiastic recep- tion by the Greeks — Misery of the country — Condition of the Government — Principles of Capodistrias — He aims at establishing- a bureaucracy on the Russian model- Military reforms — Piracy in the ^gean — The Powers in- tervene — Destruction of Grabusa by the Anglo-French fleet — Pirates destroyed by Miaoulis at Skopelos and Skiathos — Attempts of Capodistrias to improve the fi- nances — His nepotism In the midst of the excitement and enthusiasm aroused by the news of the battle of Navarino, Count John Capodistrias arrived in Greece. He had indeed been in no hurry to take up the thorny and thankless task which had been assigned to him when, on April 11, 1827, the assembly of Troezene had elected him presi- dent of Hellas. As early as July the ex-minister of liussia, in an interview with the Czar Mcholas at Zarscoeselo, had asked and received permission from his master to undertake the trust which the Greeks had offered him. The pension which the Czar pro- 381 282 THE WAR OF GREEK IT^DEPENDENCE posed to bestow upon him lie refused; but he listened with all the greater attention to the instructions which the Autocrat of the Eussias gave him for the guidance of his futiu'e conduct. If he had the imperial blessing on his enterprise, it was that he was regarded by the Czar, with justice, as Russian in his sympathies, and, above all, as one whose character and training would be the best guarantee against ^ revolutionary ' ten- dencies. The next few months he had spent partly in Switzerland, where for some time he had made his home, partly in visiting the various European courts with a view to interesting them in the affairs of Greece, and, if possible, persuading them to supply the neces- sary sinews of war. He had met with but little sym- pathy and less material support; and when the tid- ings of J^avarino led him to expect important develop- ments in the East, he determined at last to start for his new sphere of labour. The British Government placed the frigate Warspite at his disposal to convey him to Greece, and a French and a Eussian frigate were added by way of honourable escort. On the 19th of January, then, after being driven by stress of weather for two or three days into the harbour of iN'auplia, he arrived at ^gina, where the Hellenic Government now had its seat. As he landed, the three frigates ARRIVAL OF CAPODISTRIAS 283 fired a salute, and hoisted the Greek ensign at their tops, this being the first recognition by any of the Powers of the Greek flag. The arrival of the President was welcomed with the wildest demonstrations of joy by the people. The great reputation of Capodistrias, and, above all, the fact that he represented not only the national will of the Greeks, but the guaranteed support of Europe, made him appear as the long-expected Messiah of the Hellenic people. The ill will which the long delay of his coming had bred was forgotten in the joy of his actual arrival; and to the Greeks it seemed as though a new era had dawned with the moment he set foot on shore. His first impression of the country he had come to govern was not indeed such as to inspire him with any great measure of hope or confidence. The short detention in ^auplia had itself been a revelation of inconceivable chaos and misery. Ibrahim's cavalry still scoured the country up to the very gates; and inside the walls the wretched town was given up to plague, famine, and a ceaseless war of factions. The chiefs Grivas and Photomaras again held their strong- holds of Palamidi and Itsch-kale; and a fresh bom- bardment was imminent. The arrival of the new President indeed, backed as he was by the support of 284 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE the great Powers, served for the tirae to put an end to the civil strife; and, at his command, the rival cliieftains willingly surrendered their fortresses, sub- mitted to be reconciled, and placed their forces at his disposal. Arrived at ^gina, however, he re- ceived from the ministers a report of the condition of the Government and of the country which might well have made him repent the task he had under- taken. In the Morea and in continental Greece the misery of the population and the devastations of the soldiery had made all organised government impossible; and in the islands anarchy reigned supreme. While the Government was compelled to wander from Poros to !N"auplia, and from ^auplia to ^gina, to escape from the violence of the warring factions, every private in- dividual who could gather round him a band of hired ruilians was at liberty to play the tyrant in his own district. There was neither cultivation, nor commerce, nor industry remaining. The peasants no longer sowed, for the harvest would be reaped by the lawless soldiery; merchants would not venture to sea, for robbery and death awaited them there; and workmen would no longer labour, because they could not count on being paid. The Government itself was a govern- ment in little more than name, and could scarce com- CONDITION OF GREECE 285 mand obedience even in ^gina itself. The treasury was empty, and the Minister of finance could show only a budget of debts. The sole sources of revenue remaining were the tithes of certain of the islands, the customs, and the prizes brought in by the more than doubtful activity of the Greek privateers. As for the military strength of the Government, some 1,500 men under G. Diovuniotes, and 2,500 under General Church were all that could be reckoned on. The castles and strong places were still in the hands of robber chieftains. The fleet, consisting for the most part of private vessels, was being used by the islanders mainly for their own ends, principally in piracy; and the squadron under the command of Admiral Cochrane was alone at the disposal of the Gov- ernment. Finally, for the administration of justice there existed, in all Greece, only two courts — the prize court in .^gina, and the commercial court in Syra. To deal with this lamentable state of affairs Capo- distrias had only his great reputation, his experience, and about 300,000 fr. in money subscribed by Euro- pean Philhellenes for the ransom of captives. He had, indeed, the prestige of legitimacy, and of the support of the Powers, which secured him at the outset uni- versal recognition, and made even the most turbulent 286 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE spirits bow to his autliority. But for tlie creation of a really strong Government tlie essential materials were lacking. In the attempt to evolve order out of the chaos, he had, as he bitterly complained in later days to Lord Palmerston,^ to use the very instruments which had produced the confusion. In the absence of any one whom he could trust, he was thrown back upon himself; and the outward circumstances of his position seemed to exaggerate and to justify the arbi- trary policy to which, by nature and training, he was already inclined. An enlightened dictatorship was probably what would have been, at this time, the best form of government for Greece; but to have exer- cised it successfully would have required a rare com- bination of broad-mindedness and strength; and Ca- podistrias, though on the whole a man of high prin- ciples, was narrow in his sympathies, and the strength of character which he undoubtedly possessed bordered upon obstinacy. His experience of affairs, although great, had been very one-sided; and he had no imag- inative sympathy to enable him to see beyond his own somewhat narrow circle of ideas. He was in fact a typical bureaucrat, and one, moreover, who had been trained in the corrupt school of Russian state- craft. 1 Cf. Prokesch-Osten, ii, 445. GOVERNMENT OF CAPODISTRIAS 287 By such a man, with such antecedents, the problem of restoring the chaos of Greek affairs to order would be approached only in one way. He found a government, in theory democratic, liberal, and ^ revolutionary,' in practice, impotent to create or to maintain a semblance of order. E'ot unnatu- rally he came to the conclusion that the practice was the result of the theory, and that the first thing to be done was to supersede the system which had been productive of nothing but anarchy and distress by one vvdiich should prove more effective in restoring order and prosperity. He set to work then without delay to substitute for constitutional government a bureaucratic regime based on the Russian model, with himself as its sole central and motive power. His method of effecting the revolution was marked by characteristic disingenuousness. By a threat of immediate retirement in case of refusal, he first of all forced the Senate to abrogate the Constitution of Troezene. In a proclamation which he issued on the 1st of February, he then pretended that this had been done because the constitution had not given him suffi- cient powers to guarantee the independence of Greece ; and he promised to summon a new ISTational Conven- tion for April, undertaking, meanwhile, to base his government on the principles of the three constitu- 288 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE tious of Astros, Epidaurus, and Troezene. This last, however, was a mere blind to cover his intention of concentrating the whole functions of government in his own hands. In place of the Senate he created a council of twentj-seven members, called the Pan- hellenium, nominated by himself, ostensibly to advise him in his public policy, really only to register his decrees. Besides this he established a General Secretarial Bureau, a sort of Privy Council, still more dependent upon himself, and which gradually absorbed all the business of the Pan- hellenium. The crisis of the national affairs, and the prestige of foreign support, enabled Capodistrias to carry through his coup d'etat without meeting with any serious opposition. A few voices here and there were raised in protest, but they were not heard in the outburst of joy and enthusiasm which greeted the President from all sides; and the more important of the old leaders, who might at the outset have proved troublesome, he had included in the Government. Konduriottes, Zaimis, and Petrobey Mavromichales were made presidents of the three committees of the Panhellenium. Mavrocordatos the President at- tached to himself as financial adviser, with no particu- lar office ; and the powerful influence of Kolokotrones ESTABLISHMENT OF A CENTRAL BUREAUCRACY 289 was secured by appointing him commander of the forces in the Morea. Under such auspices it is possible that a wise and far-sighted statesman might have succeeded in carry- ing through his schemes of reform, and in founding a strong personal government based on the good-will and the gratitude of the people. But Capodistrias was neither wise nor far-seeing. He was a man of a cut- and-dried system, which he was determined to impose, at all hazards, upon the country he governed; and so, as his difficulties increased, and as the opposition, which had at first not ventured to make itself heard, gathered in force and bitterness, his government, from being merely irritating and oppressive, gradually de- veloped into a tyranny. Before long, and step by step, the whole machinery of Russian autocracy had been established on the free soil of Greece: an absolutely centralised government based on an elaborate system of espionage and of secret police, and supported by arbitrary imprisonment, censorship of the press, in- timidation of local authorities, and all the other weapons of iiTesponsible rule. Even the imme- morial communal liberties, which the Ottomans had suffered to survive, were now destroyed by the jealous distrust of the ex-Minister of Russia; and, in all Hellas, there was soon no power left to oppose, 19 290 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE by constitutional means, the arbitrary will of tbe President. The difficulties that faced him at the outset of his career might indeed easily have made a statesman of a more democratic temper intolerant of an opposition which may have appeared merely selfish and factions. Apart from the task of restoring some semblance of prosperity to the country, devastated by the war, there were a hundred questions, financial, military, and diplomatic, awaiting settlement. The war, too, though slumbering from the sheer exhaustion of the combat- ants, was by no means at an end. Ibrahim was still firmly established in the south of the Morea, with an army of 20,000 infantry and 4,000 cavalry. In Feb- ruary he proved that he still had power to strike, by marching northwards on one of his great harrying expeditions, in the course of which he fell upon Tripo- litza with fire and sword, razed it to the ground, blow- ing up the more solid buildings with gunpowder, and sowed the ruins with salt. He was only prevented from treating ]^auplia in the same way by symptoms of mutiny among his troops. In vain Capodistrias, by direct negotiation and through the intervention of the admirals, endeavoured to persuade him to evacu- ate the country. ^ If I go,' he said grimly, ' it will be by way of the Isthmus, and my course shall be like ATTEMPTS AT MILITARY REFORM 291 that of the simoon, which overthrows cities, buries the inhabitants in the ruins, and dries up the trees to the roots! ' Had he carried out this threat, the armies of Greece would have been in no condition to resist. It became a matter of urgent necessity to restore them to some degree of military efficiency; and the time was not unpropitious for such an undertaking. The wild soldiery were tamed by hunger, and hast- ened to obey, when the President ordered them to assemble under the command of the newly-appointed Commander-in-Chief, Prince Demetrius Hypsilanti, at Damala. Controlling as he did the only available food supplies, it would not have been difficult for the President to have compelled the Armatoli to submit to some sort of European discipline. He was, how- ever, quite unversed in military science himself, and the only man who could have carried out the reform successfully, the French Colonel Fabvier, he had re- cently, in the true spirit of autocratic jealousy, forced out of the Greek service. He contented himself then with dividing the army into unwieldy bodies of a thou- sand men, called chiliarchies, each under a colonel. Drill and discipline were allowed to take care of themselves. At sea the condition of the Hellenic forces cried 292 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE even more loudly for reform than on land. Soon after the arrival of the President, Hydra had sent a deputation with offers of assistance, but coupled with a demand for redress of grievances, and compensa- tion for losses sustained in the national cause. To their haughty advances Capodistrias replied by a snub. Out of an empty treasury no compensation could be paid, even if it were due; as for their condescending offers, he had no need of them; they must obey his orders, or he would take care that they were not in- cluded in the terms of the treaty establishing Greek independence.^ This episode was the first of a series wdiich threw the islands ultimately into armed oppo- sition to the President. For the present the great question at sea was that of the suppression of piracy. For some time the Powers had winked at its continuance, because it gave them from time to time a ready pretext for in- terfering in the affairs of the Archipelago. But now the evil exceeded all bounds. I^ot only did vessels, which were virtually pirates, sail under letters of marque from the Greek Government, but regular cor- sair strongholds had been established on many islands of the ^gean; and now on Grabusa, off the coast of Crete, a flourishing town had sprung up which was 1 Mendelssohn, ii. p. 43. SUPPRESSION OF PIRACY 293 solely supported by this nefarious traffic. This ex- hausted the patience of the Powers, and in No- vember 1827 the admirals received orders to clear the seas. In January 1828, accordingly, Commodore Sir Thomas Staines appeared oif Grabusa with a com- bined xVnglo-French squadron, captured a dozen pirate ships, and destroyed the town. The inhabitants fled to Crete, and joined the insurgents under the Philhel- lenes Hahn and Urquhart. At the same time, Capo- distrias dispatched the Greek fleet on a similar errand elsewhere. Whatever the sins of the Government ves- sels themselves might be, there could be no question of the duty of suppressing pirates who dared to operate without lawful authority; and at Skopelos Admiral Miaoulis destroyed forty-one, and at Skiathos thirty- eight, pirate ships. After completing this work, he was sent to help Sachtouris blockade Ibrahim in ISTav- arino, and try to cut off the supplies which, from time to time, he had received from Crete and from the Io- nian Islands, At every turn the President was hampered in his operations by lack of funds. He attempted, with but poor success, to establish at ^gina a national bank, to which, as he let it be plainly known, he expected the wealthier of the Greek leaders to contribute. In 294 THE WAR OP GREEK INDEPENDENCE spite, however, of all the pressure he brought to bear, and of considerable deposits made by those inde- fatigable Philhellenes, King Ludwig of Bavaria and the banker Eynardt of Geneva, the project lan- guished, in the absence of either credit or adequate securities. The old Turkish system of farming the taxes, so fruitful of misery and corruption, had not been abolished; and, as they now fetched an in- creased price, a certain sum was made by putting these up once more to auction. It was decreed, moreover, that the taxes, which had hitherto been collected in kind, were in future to be paid in money: a regula- tion which resulted in giving over the peasantry into the hands of the usurers. The President addressed pitiful appeals for advances to the Cabinets of Europe, but for the present with very moderate success; and not till after the outbreak of the Russo-Turkish war did he receive subsidies on a large enough scale to relieve his embarrassments. In his dislike and distrust of the men with whom he had to work, Capodistrias allowed himself to be misled into what was possibly the most fatal of all his many blunders. He thrust his own brothers into of- fices of great importance, for which they were wholly unfit, and surrounded himself more and more with compatriots of his own, members of the same semi- NEPOTISM OF CAPODISTRIAS 295 Venetian Corfiot aristocracy to which he himself be- longed, who had taken no share in the war of Libera- tion, and were out of sympathy with the democratic ideas of the Greek people. His brother Viaro, a law- yer by profession, who had no quality either of brain or heart to recommend him, he made administrator of the Sporades, where his arrogance, folly, and absolute con- tempt for law or justice, made the wretched islanders long for the Turkish cadis back again. Yet this man, of whose tyrannous dealings with the islands Capodis- trias had been well acquainted, was, when shortly after his arrival Lord Cochrane resigned his command, ap- pointed High Admiral. In the same way, his younger brother Agostino, mthout possessing one single quali- fication for the office, except perhaps an imposing presence, was appointed over the heads of Hypsilanti and Sir Richard Church to the supreme command of the army. Such flagrant instances of nepotism could hardly fail to offend and alienate a people as "jealous and am- bitious as the Greeks; and if, for the time being, the position of Capodistrias was unshaken, it was that his presence among them was regarded as a pledge of the goodwill of Russia and of the Triple Alliance, from which alone they could now hope to obtain that for which they had fought and suffered. Should anything 296 THE WAR OF GPwEEK INDEPENDENCE at any time occur to shake their faith in the good in- tentions of the Powers, their disappointment would assuredly vent itself against the man who had done so much to make his government odious and oppressive. CHAPTER XYIII The effects of the Russian Campaign on the Concert — Unex- pected vitality of Turkey — The French commissioned by the Concert to drive Ibrahim from the Morea — Cod- rington at Alexandria — He arranges with Mehemet Ali for the evacuation of the Morea — Landing of the French at Modon — Ibrahim evacuates the Peloponnese — The French occupy the fortresses — Protocol of November 16 — Withdrawal of the French army — Capodistrias presses the war — Renewed insurrection in Crete — Greek naval operations — Hypsilanti advances into Attica — Opera- tions in West Hellas ' The Triple Alliance/ said Metternieli, ^ consists of one Power at war, which at the same time poses as mediator; of another Power which operates in a spirit of friendly hostility ; and, finally, of a Power friendly to the Porte, which is at the same time the ally of its declared enemy and the accomplice of its friendly foe ! Europe has never experienced such an imbroglio ! ' ^ The Russian declaration of war had indeed pro- duced a strange diplomatic tangle, which it seemed, at first sight, almost hopeless to attempt to unravel. 1 Mendelssohn, ii. 94. 297 298 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE The Triple Alliance appeared to be once more on the point of breaking np. The British Cabinet saw with horror and alarm the threatened destruction of the Ottoman power in Europe, the maintenance of which was one of the main articles of its political creed; yet it was bound, by treaty obligations, by public opinion, and, above all, by the ^ untoward ' fact of Navarino, to aid and abet in the fatal work. Welling- ton indeed declared roundly that, come what might, he would suffer no Russian aggrandisement. For the present, however, all that could be done was to at- tempt to counterbalance the expected victories of the Czar's forces by judicious tactics within the field of operation of the Alliance. For the present, indeed, the alarm of England at the action of Russia was without grounds. As has often since been the case, the ^ Sick Man,' who, ac- cording to wise diplomatic doctors, was at the point of dissolution, showed at the approach of danger a most unexpectedly vigorous vitality. Instead of the easy and triumphant march to Constantinople, which the Russians had looked forward to when they crossed the Pruth, it cost them two hardly-contested cam- paigns before they could bring the Ottomans to terms. This, however, was as yet ' on the knees, and be- tween the hands of the gods,' and, for the present, the INTERVENTION OF THE FRENCH 299 other two Powers of the Alliance feared to be out- shone by the prestige of Eussia in the East. It was proposed in the Conference, which was still sitting in London, to intervene actively to secure the evacuation of the Morea by the Egyptian forces. England, in- deed, at first refused to do anything that might still further embarrass the Porte; but the Prince de Polig- nac pointed out, in a diplomatic aside, that the inter- vention was regarded at Paris ' as a means for getting a free hand as regards Kussia.' The Russian represent- ative for his part had no objection to a course which would create a further diversion in Russia's favour; and so finally it was decided, on the 19th of July, that France should occupy the Morea, and compel the with- drawal of Ibrahim.^ England, out of friendly con- sideration for her old ally the Sultan, refused to share in the enterprise, and stipulated that, as soon as her work was done, France should withdraw her troops. The Government of Charles X. eagerly accepted the task, only too glad of an opportunity for covering the ever-widening cracks in its foundations with fresh wreaths of military glory. Meanwhile, however, circumstances, and the irre- pressible activity of Codrington, once more interfered with the designs of the^Conference. Capodistrias was 1 Protocol of July 19. Prokesch, Appendix, ix. 21. 800 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE now doubly anxious to rid the Morea of the presence of Ibrahim. The Russian invasion had withdrawn the mass of the Turkish troops from continental Greece; and it would have been easy to reconquer all that had been won from the Greeks by Reshid; but as long as Ibrahim remained in the south it was impossi- ble for the Hellenic forces to leave the Morea. Under these circumstances the President once more earnestly pressed the admirals to compel the withdrawal of the Egyptian army; and in July a conference was held by them at Zante, at which it was decided ' to facilitate the sailing of a fleet of transports from Alexandria, to carry away Ibrahim's forces. If, however, the hopes of Egyptian transports should prove deceptive, every- thing possible would have been done.' Admiral Codrington, without authority from above, and without consulting any one, determined that the hopes should not prove deceptive. He sailed to Alexandria, and, on the 9th of August, arranged a treaty with Mehemet Ali, providing for an exchange of prisoners, and for the immediate evacuation of the Morea. The strong and frank personality of the Brit- ish admiral is said to have exercised a great influence over the mind of the Viceroy; but the determining factor in the negotiations was of course the impending Erench expedition, which both were aware of, but GENERAL MAISON IN THE MOREA 301 neither mentioned! ^ It was the last interference on behalf of Greece of the clear-sighted and courageous admiral; and it came none too soon; for, on his return to ISTavarino, he found Sir Pulteney Malcolm, who had been sent out to supersede him.^ In their eagerness for glory, the French had pushed on their preparations with unexpected haste; and on the 30th of August, before the transports which were to convey Ibrahim to Alexandria had arrived, General Maison landed with 14,000 men at Petalidi in the Gulf of Coron. To their infinite disgust, however, they found that the object of their expedition had already been achieved. The Egyptian army showed not the slightest disposition to dispute their landing. On the contrary, Ibrahim called upon the French com- mander, and inspected the troops, which, instead of the expected glory, had to be content with some neatly- turned compliments on their smartness and military appearance. On the 16th of September the transports arrived, 1 Mendelssohn, ii. 97. 2 The conduct of Admiral Codring-ton during- his com- mand had been violently criticized, and his independence had more than once forced the hand of the Government. In the present instance, however. Lord Aberdeen paid in the House of Lords a high tribute to the skill with which the negotiations at Alexandria had been conducted, Cf. Hansard, xxiv. 991. 302 THE WAB OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE and the Egyptian army began to embark. On the 3rd of October Ibrabim himself left with the last of his troops. It had been stipulated that no prisoners were to be removed against their will, and French soldiers were drawn np on the qnay to see that this provision was observed. Of the six hundred captives, however, only eleven elected to remain in their devastated coun- try. For the rest the flesh-pots of Egypt seemed to hold out greater attractions; and in the end the scan- dal of such a desertion was avoided by their all being compelled to remain. The ill-will of the French at being deprived of their laurels found vent in a breach of the convention which Codrington had arranged with Mehemet Ali, and which the French affected not to recognise. By the terms of the treaty for the evacuation of the country, Ibrahim was to be allowed to leave garrisons in such fortresses as had been in the occupation of the Sultan's forces at the time of his landing; and, in accordance with this provision, garrisons had been left in the castles of Coron, Modon, and i^avarino, and in the fort of Ehium. These the French summoned to sur- render. The Turks refused, but, in the case of the first-named fortresses, suffered the besiegers to plant their ladders against the walls, and storm the defences without opposition. Only the fort of Rhium resisted, THE TURKS EVACUATE THE MOREA 303 but, after a short bombardment, this also capitulated at discretion; and this, for the present, completed the warlike operations of the French in Greece. During the remainder of the occupation the troops were em- ployed in the arts of peace: in making roads, tilling the devastated fields, clearing out the accumulated filth in the towns, and generally setting a good ex- ample, which it would have been well for the Greeks to have followed. The French occupation was unpopular in Greece, and Capodistrias himself had not desired it; but, now that it was a fait accompli, he thought it might be put to still further uses. The withdrawal of Ibrahim had left him free to put an end to the practical armistice which had now for months obtained in East and West Hellas; and he now suggested that General Maison should march across the Isthmus, and drive the Otto- mans into Macedonia. However much he may have desired to do so, the French General, in face of his instructions, dared not accept; though probably, had he done so, the Government at Paris would have gladly justified his action. Any hesitation he may have had was set aside by another protocol of the Conference of London, that of the 16th of ISTovember, which declared the Morea, with the neighbouring islands and the Cyclades, under the protection of Europe, thereby 304 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE tacitly excluding continental Greece from all share in the benefits won by the war/ The French now with- drew from Greece, leaving only a couple of battalions in the fortresses of Coron and ]^avarino to act as a guarantee of order. The publication of the protocol of the 16th of !N'ovember roused a storm of indignation throughout Greece. Capodistrias himself shared the popular feel- ing. The inclusion of continental Greece in the new State was vital to its very existence as a free country; and the President determined to press the war, in spite of Conference and protocols. ^ I agree with you,' he wrote to General Haydeck, ' that if we had some well- served field pieces and a few squadrons of cavalry we could win our frontier in spite of the London protocol.' ^ In prosecuting the war with vigour Capodistrias had a double object to serve. He desired to secure for Greece her natural boundary, and he wished also to effect a diversion in favour of Russia, which was now being hard pressed in the Balkan campaign. If the inclusion of Athens and Thebes in the Hel- lenic State was an article of faith, that of the island of Crete could hardly be regarded as more than a pious 1 For text see Prokesch, Appendix, ix. 45. 2 Mendelssohn, ii. 109. RENEWED RISING IN CRETE 305 aspiration. Yet, in the interests of Russia rather than those of Greece, Capodistrias had not hesitated to fan once more into a flame the ever smouldering embers of Cretan rebellion. Soon after the Russian declara- tion of war, he had sent the Philhellene Baron Reineck to replace the Cretan leader, Hadji-Michali, who had been killed at Francocastelli, and had entrusted him with a message characteristically diplomatic. Greece dare not, he said, call on the men of Sphakia to rise; but, if they did so of their own accord, a Greek com- missary would be there to counsel and lead them. Much less would have sufficed to rouse the inflamma- ble islanders. The insurrection, once begun, swept with irresistible force over the island. At ITerokuro the Ottomans were defeated ; the district of Apocorona was in the hands of the rebels; and the Turks were driven back upon Suda. Massacres of Greeks in the power of the Ottomans followed every Greek victory, the work of mutual slaughter proceeding uninter- rupted until, in October, Admiral Malcolm, Codring- ton's successor, appeared off the island, and proposed an armistice in the name of the Powers. Mustapha, the Turkish commander, at first refused, but ulti- mately was persuaded to accept the armistice ; but in spite of this the plundering and murder went on on one side and the other, for some time longer. 20 306 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE The naval operations of the Greeks during the year 1828 were also, in the pursuit of the same policy as that which had stirred up the useless rising in Crete, directed primarily in the interests of Eussia, and only indirectly in those of Greece. Eussia, in declaring war on Turkey, had, as has already been mentioned, sought to reassure her allies by guaranteeing the neutrality of the Mediterranean; but, as her difficulties in the Bal- kan peninsula increased, she sought by one means or another to modify this arrangement, as far as such modification suited her own interests/ Count Hey den received orders to blockade the Dardanelles; and he even went so far as to capture two or three Egyptian vessels, on the plea that they were conveying muni- tions of war to Bulgaria.^ Owing, however, to the strenuous objections of the allied Powers, the block- ade was subsequently modified, and the captured ships were released. Under these circumstances Capodis- trias did what he could to come to the assistance of Eussia. He ordered Admiral Sachtouris, who was blockading Volo, to raise the blockade and sail to the Hellespont, on the pretext that this measure was neces- sary to secure the arrival of the necessary food sup- plies. At the same time he issued letters of marque to a number of privateers, who promptly revived that 1 Prokesch, Appendix, ix. 33. 2 /ft. x. 5. HYPSILANTI IN ATTICA 307 piratical activity which at the beginning of the year Capodistrias had himself aided in suppressing. Among others, eight Austrian vessels were brought in and condemned by the prize court at iEgina ; but, on the vigorous intervention of the Austrian Captain Dandolo, the booty had to be disgorged. On land meanwhile operations had, during the summer, been at a standstill. As long as Ibrahim remained in the Morea, any action beyond the Isthmus was impossible ; and Hypsilanti had remained in camp at Megara. He was, however, only waiting till the withdrawal of the Egyptian troops became a certainty; and in October accordingly, when the new^s of Ibra- him^s embarkation reached him, he broke up his camp and advanced into Attica. The country had been de- nuded of troops by the Russian war, and the advance of the Greeks was rapid and victorious. Attica was immediately overrun ; and, after two successes gained at Stevenikos and Martini, Boeotia with its capital Levadia, and Salona fell into their hands. The pos- session of East Hellas seemed now assured to the Greeks, and the season being far advanced, Hypsilanti concentrated his forces round Thebes. In Western Hellas also military operations had, for the greater part of the year, been practically at a standstill. Shortly after the battle of ;N"avarino, 308 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Captain Hastings had transported a small body of troops, under General Church, to Dragomesti on the coast of Acarnania; and subsequently another force crossed the Gulf of Corinth and occupied the site of a Greek fort on the mainland, opposite the island of Trisognia. But the troops were utterly demoralised; the peasants were in general hostile to them; and nothing was done. Captain Hastings had, on De- cember 29, 1827, bombarded and captured the fort of Yasiladi ; but, not long afterwards, he had retired in dudgeon from active operations, owing to the fact, which Church was powerless to prevent, that the Greek chiefs were carrying on a brisk trade with the Turks at Patras in the rations supplied to them by the Philhellenes ! After the arrival of Capodistrias, he had indeed again allowed himself to be persuaded to resume operations; but an attack which, on the 25th of May, he made on Anatoliko was repulsed; and he himself, to the great sorrow of the Greeks, whom he had served with such unselfish courage and devotion, was mortally wounded. A month later, on the 27fch of June, Capodistrias himself arrived off the coast of Acarnania on board the Warsjute, and proceeded to visit the camp of Sir Richard Church. He found the troops in an even worse condition than those he had reviewed not long OPERATIONS IN WEST HELLAS 309 before at Troezene, and lie was not careful to disguise his opinion. When Church proposed to introduce the officers of his force, the President refused. ^ I know these gentlemen/ he said. ^ You have fought the Turks for nine years, you say ! You have stolen sheep and goats ! That is all you have done ! ' ^ Yet one at least of these officers, the Frenchman Manche, had taken part in the heroic defence of Missolonghi. Capodistrias was indeed distinguished for the posses- sion of a biting tongue, which he kept but imperfectly under control; and it made him many enemies. Church, however, was glad enough of the incentive given by the President's visit to exchange the weari- some inactivity of the last months for active opera- tions. In September the Greeks advanced to the Gulf of Arta, and occupied Loutraki. An attempt of the Corsican adventurer Pasano, who had been appointed by Capodistrias to succeed Captain Hastings, to force an entrance to the Gulf of Arta failed ; but the Greek officers, who believed this failure to have been due to the admiral's cowardice, subsequently made another attempt, without waiting for orders, and passed gal- lantly under the batteries of Prevesa. This secured to the Greeks the command of the Gulf of Arta. Pasano was now recalled, and the courageous and capa- 1 Mendelssohn, ii. 85. 310 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ble Hydriot admiral, Kriezes, appointed to succeed him. On tlie 29 th of December the town of Yonitza fell into the hands of the Greeks; but the almost de- fenceless Venetian castle did not surrender till March 17, 1829. CHAPTER XIX Joint report of the ambassadors at Poros — The Protocol of March 22 — Indig-nation of the Greeks — Capodistrias pro- testa against the Protocol — He refuses to cease hostili- ties — Arbitrary rule of the President — Financial support of Europe — A National Assembly summoned — Measures taken by Capodistrias to secure satisfactory elections — Congress opened at Arg-os — Proceedings of the Congress — Beginnings of organised opposition "While the Conference of tlie Powers was consulting in London, a commission, consisting of the three am- bassadors who had retired from Constantinople, had been sitting at Poros for the purpose of collecting evi- dence and reporting. They had applied to Count Capo- distrias for statistics of the condition of Greece, and he had furnished them, as far as the confused and dis- organised state of the country would allow. At the same time he had insisted on the Greek views with regard to the boundary question, and had suggested Prince Leopold of Coburg, afterwards first King of the Belgians, as a candidate for the sovereignty of Hellas. In December 1828 the commissioners re- 311 312 THE WAE OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE ported, and their memorandum, known as the Proto- col of Poros, formed the basis of a protocol signed, on behalf of all the Powers, at London on March 22, 1829, the provisions of which did not differ very greatly from the measures which were adopted when Greece was ultimately established as an independent kingdom. The frontier of the new Hellenic State was to be drawn from the Gulf of Yolo to the Gulf of Arta, and among the islands it was to include Euboea and the Cyclades. An annual tribute of about £30,000 was to be paid to the Porte. The Turks who had owned land in Greece were to be allowed to sell their prop- erty, or to be otherwise compensated. The Hellenic State was to enjoy perfect autonomy under the su- zerainty of the Sultan, and was to be governed by an hereditary prince selected by the Porte and the Powers.^ This plan, which fixed a boundary so much morel liberal than had been foreshadowed by the protocol] of the 16th of November, might have been carrie( into execution at once, had all the contracting Powers] been really in earnest. It embodied the views of Sir Stratford Canning, whose intimate acquaintance with] the conditions of the problem seemed to guarantee itg success; and it was warmly supported by France. Bui 1 Prokesch, Appendix, x. 2. THE PROTOCOL OF MARCH 22 313 Russia had no desire to see tlie Greek question settled before she herself was in a position to wring terms out of the Sultan, and would have preferred to post- pone the whole matter until she could make peace. The diplomatic pedantry, or the short-sighted policy, of Lord Aberdeen, played into the hands of the Russians. He consented, indeed, in order to keep on good terms with France, to sign the protocol; but he insisted at the same time on a diplomatic procedure which ended by postponing the whole question, until the result of her second campaign made Russia the sole judge. * While Capodistrias was intriguing, while Sultan Mahmoud w^as fuming with rage, and while the population of Greece was perishing from misery, the English Foreign Secretary insisted on reserving to each of the Allied Courts the right of weighing separately the objections which the indig- nant Sultan might make to the proposed arrange- ments/ ^ Under these circumstances the judgment passed by Metternich on the work of the Allies was neither unjust nor untrue. He saw that the protocol was less concerned with the welfare of the Greeks than with the desire to arrange a modus vivendi for the Concert. ^ The Triple Alliance,' he said, ' can live on the protocol for ^ year; but the Alliance itself is 1 Finlay, ii. 222. 314 THE WAE OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE impotent for good. It is only a combination of wiles against wiles.' ^ In Greece itself tlie publication of the protocol was received with an outburst of indignation not inferior to that which had greeted the protocol of the 16th of jSTovember. To the Greeks it seemed that, all through the long and tortuous processes of the diplo- matic negotiations, which had now reached another stage, they themselves had been regarded merely as pawns in the game of statecraft, to be moved hither and thither as the players pleased, and without regard to their own desires or aspirations. After all that they had done and endured, they were to be cheated of the freedom for which alone they had fought and suffered ! For what was this ' autonomy ' worth that year by year had to acknowledge a degrading depend- ence; which merely substituted for the blood tax which the ray ah had paid to the Ottoman, a lump sum paid yearly for the right of the nation to exist? The Hydriots and Spezziots had been ' autonomous ' be- fore the war. Had they fought and bled for eight years merely to be ^autonomous' at the end? The wild hillsmen of the Maina declared loudly that they would only pay tribute, as from time immemorial they had paid it, at the point of their swords. What, too, 1 Mendelssohn, ii. 124. INDIGNATION OF THE GREEKS 315 of the islands which had suffered so much in the cause of liberty, and were now to be left to languish under the yoke of the Turk? What of Samos, of Crete, above all, of Chios? Was this rent and mutilated fragment, arbitrarily cut off from the Hellenic body by the cynical selfishness of Europe, all that was to be left of the great Panhellenic ideal which had been so enthusiastically proclaimed by the Constitution of Troezene ? Upon Capodistrias, too, as in a sense the repre- sentative of the Powers, fell some reflection of this hostile criticism. He had indeed himself, though he had at the outset refused to subscribe to the wide claims of the Constitution of Troezene, consented to receive the protocol only under protest. He had, he said, under the terms of the Constitution, no right to accept it on his own authority. Pending the meeting of the I^ational Assembly, however, he would consent to do so. His experience of diplomacy and of the nature of protocols had probably taught him that, with the Eusso-Turkish war still undecided, the protocol was worth little more than the paper on which it was written, and that its acceptance at the present moment, with the reservation of the ultimate right of the Assembly to decide, would in no wise compro- mise the eventual settlement of the question. 316 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Capodistrias had, indeed, no intention of submit- ting to the terms of the protocol. On the question of the Ottoman suzerainty he was prepared to keep an open mind; but he resented the article which de- prived the Greeks of the right to elect their own prince. In spite of the suggestion he had thrown out to the commission at Poros, that the crown should be offered to Prince Leopold of Coburg, he had never surrendered the hope that he himself might ultimately be the ruler selected; and this was the end to which all his efforts were directed, and to which the re-estab- lishment of order and prosperity in Greece were means. It seemed to him intolerable that, after he had borne all the burden and heat of the day, and had turned the ungoverned wilderness which he had found into a strong and well-ordered state, at the eleventh hour another should step in and enjoy all the fruits of his toil. His prospects of being selected by the Powers were remote. If the choice were left to the Greek nation itself, his popularity among the mass of the people and the measures he had taken to assure his influence would probably be sufficient to secure his appointment. On the 18th of May the British Resident requested the President, as the Ottoman Government had agreed to an armistice, to cease hostilities on his part, and to CAPODISTRIAS REJECTS THE PROTOCOL 317 withdraw within the limits assigned by the protocol of the 16th of November. Capodistrias refused, on the plea that this had never been officially notified to him; and, at the same time, he formally protested against that article of the protocol of the 22nd of March, which deprived the Greeks of all voice in the selection of their sovereign. To the representa- tive of Prince Leopold, who had been sent to make inquiries, he stated emphatically that the candidature of no prince would be acceptable to the Greek people under the terms of the protocol of the 22nd of March, which excluded the islands of Samos and Crete from the Hellenic State. He added furthermore that the acceptance of the Orthodox religion would be regarded as an absolutely essential condition of the acceptance of any ruler by the Greeks. This was the first of a long series of difficulties and objections raised by Capodis- trias, by which he at length persuaded Prince Leopold to resign his candidature. Capodistrias was now at the height of his power. He had succeeded, by one means or another, in bring- ing the whole administrative machinery of Greece into immediate dependence on his own will; and, under the shadowy forms of a constitutional republic, he was in fact an absolute monarch. His popularity among the mass of the people was as yet unimpaired; and 318 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE thoTigli there was great discontent among certain sec- tions of the political classes, any signs of this consti- tutional opposition were ruthlessly suppressed. Even the most private criticisms passed on the President were treated as treason against the State; and private letters were opened and examined by order of the Government, their contents being used as evidence of disaffection against the existing order/ While, by such tyrannical means as these, Capo- distrias had been able to establish an undisputed au- thority in all the affairs of Greece, he had succeeded also in maintaining his reputation throughout Europe unimpaired. He had throughout been careful to give the impression that his arbitrary measures were but temporary expedients, unhappily necessitated by the disturbed state of Greece, and that, as soon as the Government had been placed on a firm foundation, and some degree of order and prosperity restored to the country, the liberties secured by the Constitution, and Avhich he had sworn to respect, would be once more conceded. With this explanation the Liberals of Europe were fain to be satisfied; and the sup- 1 A priest named Pharmakidi was imprisoned for no other offence than having-, in a confidential letter to a friend, dared to comment adversely on some measures of the President. EUROPEAN SUBSIDIES 319 port of the Philhellenes was still ungrudgingly be- stowed. The European Governments, too, were now no longer backward in their support; and the Presi- dent was relieved from the financial embarrassments which had hampered his operations on his first arrival. The subsidies from Russia alone amounted, by the be- ginning of the year 1831, to over 3,000,000 francs, besides large consignments of munitions of war. Charles X. subscribed 250,000 francs a month for the ^ Vendee du Christianisme.' England, after a great many refusals, at last also sent a contribution of 500,000 francs. Finally, the Genevese banker Eynardt forwarded 700,000 francs as the beginning of a new loan. AVith these resources, for the expendi- ture of which he was responsible to no one, with his personal popularity, and his unshaken hold on the organisation of the Government, the position of the President seemed unassailable. ' Greece,' said Metter- nich, ^ is Capodistrias.' When, on his arrival, Capodistrias had caused the suspension of the Constitution of Troezene, he had promised to summon a meeting of the J^ational Assembly without undue delay. April had been the date originally fixed; but the President had, on one pretext and another, managed to postpone the Con- gress for more than a year. ISTow, however, the 320 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE presentation of tlie protocols, and the international relations of Greece, made it necessary for him at last to carry out his promise, and summon a meeting of the representatives of the nation. He had indeed no fear as to the result. The old communal liberties had been destroyed; the votes of the electors, for all purposes, were directed by the prefects appointed by the central Government; and, to make assurance doubly sure, he now caused the Panhellenium to pass a law placing the electoral colleges absolutely under the heel of the administration. Not content with this, he undertook, in the month of March, an extended tour through the country, to influence the electors by his personal presence. The peasantry were just beginning to feel the return of prosperity after the exhaustion of the war, and * Pappa Johannes ' was greeted every- where with the greatest enthusiasm. The result was the return of an assembly blindly devoted to his in- terests. On the 23rd of July, Capodistrias, in a Russian uniform and his breast covered with orders, opened the new Congress, which met in the ruins of the ancient theatre of Argos. Signs of opposition were, indeed, not wanting; but in the Congress itself no criticism of the President's policy could make itself heard. Kolokotrones, ever a PROCEEDINGS OF THE CONGRESS 821 notable supporter of Capodistrias, had ridden down from the mountains at the head of an armed band; and Niketas, the ^ Turk-eater/ was present with a force nominally deputed to protect the Congress, really to overawe it in the interests of the President. An address of confidence in the President was moved. Grivas and one or tw^o other critical spirits desired to raise objections; but they could not succeed in making themselves heard. Kolokotrones leaped up, as soon as the tendency of their remarks became ap- parent. ^ We want no European tomfoolery here ! ' he cried ; ^ N^o babble ! Let those who are in favour of the address stand up ! ' As he enforced his arguments by drawing his yataghan, and his followers were the more numerous, there was nothing to urge in reply, and the address of confidence in the President was passed without a dissentient voice! A Government which could command so effective a closure had little to fear from factious opposition. There were violent scenes more than once. At one time Kolokotrones and Grivas were with difficulty kept from crossing swords. But, in the end, the resolutions passed by the assembly were entirely in accord with the policy of the Govern- ment; which was the less surprising since, as a matter of fact, they had all been drawn up by Capodistrias himself. He had not indeed obtained his nomination 21 822 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE to tlie Presidency for life, as that would have been of little value without the previous consent of the Pow- ers, but he had obtained an Act of the Assembly de- claring that the decisions of the Conference of Lon- don should not be held to be binding on Greece, without the ratification of the Greek legislature, lie was, moreover, in negotiating the settlement of the Greek question with the Powers, given a free hand in the matter of the suzerainty and the tribute. On the 19th of August the Congress was dissolved; and the position of Capodistrias seemed more firmly assured than ever. But the constitutional opposition which had been so long suppressed was beginning to make headway. The decisions of an assembly so notoriously packed could carry no moral weight; it was known that it had merely registered the decrees of the President; and the discontented spirits ex- pressed their sense of the situation by saying sarcasti- cally ^ John poured out: John drank! ' A new senate had been created by the Assembly, of which the constitution overthrew all the democratic principles enunciated by former congresses. Sixty names were presented to the President, and out of these he selected twenty-one, adding six more on his own nomination. It v/as in connection with this that ^ BEGINNINGS OF OPPOSITION 323 he experienced the first signs of the coming storm. Miaoulis, Kondnriottes, and Mavrocordatos, to whom he offered places, refused, and formed the nucleus of an influential opposition. CHAPTEK XX Operations in East and West Hellas— Last engagement of the War— End of the Eusso-Turkish War — The Peace of Adrianople — Reception of the news in Greece — Its effect on the Powers — Anglo-Austrian entente — Protocol of February 3, 1830 — Leopold of Coburg accepts the crown — Capodistrias rejects the Protocol — Agitation in Greece — Leopold resigns — Concession by the Porte of reforms in Crete — They are rejected by the Cretans — Boundaries of Greece fixed by Protocol of July 1 — Evacuation of Hel- las by the Turks. The weary struggle was now dragging to its termina- tion. Both sides had long been exhausted; the fiery enthusiasm of the revolt was quenched, and the stub- born opposition of the oppressors broken. For the Greeks there remained but the task of clearing conti- nental Hellas of the last remnants of the Ottoman oc- cupation. Capodistrias, who had expressed himself dissatis- fied with both Hypsilanti and General Church, at this juncture ^ astonished the world by making his brother Agostino a general,' ^ and sending him, though he was 1 Finlay, ii. 207. Mendelssohn, li. 86. 324 LAST INCIDENTS OF THE WAR 325 little better than a fool, to take over the supreme di- rection of all civil and military matters in Western Hellas. In the absence of any qualifications for this position, fortune came to his assistance. A wily Greek named Paparrigopulos, who had studied a rude diplomacy in the school of Ali Pasha, had for some time been at work undermining the morale of the Turkish garrisons of Lepanto, Mis- solonghi, and Anatoliko; and, when Count Agostino appeared off these cities, he easily succeeded in per- suading them to surrender. The garrison of Lepanto capitulated on the 30th of April; and Missolonghi and Anatoliko were evacuated on the 14th of May. Agostino, who conducted the operations of the land forces from the secure vantage ground of the quarter- deck of the Hellas, gained all the credit of these suc- cesses, which were really due to the insidious propa- ganda of Paparrigopulos.^ A last expiring effort was made by the Turks in Eastern Hellas before hostili- ties ceased. A body of Albanians under Asian Bey marched from Zeituni by way of Thermopylae, Leva- dia, and Thebes. Hypsilanti's troops were seized with a sudden panic, and scattered to all the four winds. Asian advanced without opposition to Athens, left a select garrison in the Acropolis, and, collecting such 1 Mendelssohn, ii. 86. 326 THE WAE OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Turks as were still scattered over tlie country, began his return marcli. Meanwliile, however, Hypsilanti's troops had assembled again as quickly as they had dis- persed, and when Asian reached the Pass of Petra, he found his retreat cut off by a superior Greek force. Unable to fight his way through, he was compelled, on September 25, 1829, to conclude a capitulation, by which the Turks engaged to evacuate all Eastern Hel- las, except the Acropolis and the fort of Karababa on the Euripus. This was the last engagement of the War of Liberation. It fell, therefore, to Prince Demetrius Hypsilanti to conclude the war, which his brother had begun, eight years before, on the banks of the Pruth. It was, however, by the victory of a mightier com- batant that the fate of Greece had, meanwhile, been decided. The war, which for two summers had been waged between the Russians and Turks in the Balkan peninsula, had come to a sudden and dramatic end. It had from the first been a war of surprises, the Otto- mans revealing imsuspected strength, and the Russians unsuspected weakness. And now by sheer force of as- surance, the weaker forced the stronger to submit! General Diebitsch stood with about 13,000 men at Adrianople, in the heart of an enemy's country, threat- ened in the rear by the unconquered armies of the THE PEACE OF ADRIANOPLE 327 Grand Yizier and tlie Pasha of Skutari, and, in front, faced bj the mighty city of Constantinople, which con- tained at least a hundred thousand men capable of bearing arms. Yet he conquered, where he ought to have capitulated. Though his scanty troops were dec- imated by disease, and he had no hope of reinforce- ments, he succeeded, by the boldness of his move- ments, in exaggerating the idea of his strength, and, finally, terrified the Ottoman Government into sub- mission.^ On the 14th of September the Peace of Adrianople was signed. Its terms largely increased the influence of Russia in the East, and especially in the Danubian principalities, which were rendered by its provisions practically independent of the Ottoman Government, and therefore all the more open to Eussian interfer- ence. Besides certain provisions dealing with Russian trade rights and the free navigation of the Bosphorus, the treaty also included the acceptance by the Porte of the principles of the London Protocol of the 22nd of March, dealing with the affairs of Greece.^ Thus, ow- ing to the procrastinating policy of the other mem- bers of the Alliance, Russia was able to pose before the world as the sole guarantor of the independence 1 Fyffe. Modern Europe, i. 342. Mendelssohn, ii. 164. 2 Prokesch, Appendix, x. 30. 328 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE of Greece, and take to lierself all the credit whicli slie would otherwise have had to share with her allies. The news of the conclusion of the Peace of Adrianople was received in Greece with the liveliest demonstrations of joy. Capodistrias, who believed that now he would reap the reward of his obedience to the mandate which the Czar had given to him at the meeting at Czarscoeselo, publicly announced the peace, and ordered Te Deums to be sung in the churches. When, however, the terms of the treaty became known, the delight of the Greeks was turned into disgust, and Capodistrias felt that he had been betrayed by the Power which he had served so faith- fully. Russia, from which they had expected so much, had after all only obtained for them the terms of the protocol of the 22nd of March, which they had already rejected with indignation and scorn. Capodistrias also experienced a bitter disillusion. His own claims had been forgotten. Of the presidency for life, which was the least reward he might have expected for his faith- ful service to the cause of Russia, there was no men- tion ; he was, after all, to be ousted in favour of some German princeling. The treaty, moreover, gave a seri- ous blow to his popularity in Greece. He had all along been regarded as the representative of Russia, the guar- antee and surety of the Czar's goodwill; and this had EFFECT ON THE RELATIONS OF THE POWERS 329 not a little contributed to strengtlien his position. The disappointment and dismay of the Greeks now inevi- tably turned against him, as in some measure respon- sible for the dashing of their hopes; and from this period the opposition to his government, hitherto timid and depressed, gained in intensity and boldness. If the Peace of Adrianople had made a bad im- pression on the Greeks, the news of it fell into the midst of the conference of the Powers with the dis- turbing force of a bomb. Serious as the effects of the Russian success undoubtedly were, they were exag- gerated out of all proportion by the alarms of the statesmen of the Alliance. 'Not only had Russia out- witted and overreached her allies by settling the Greek question without their co-operation, but the whole edifice of the Ottoman Power, which it had been the policy especially of England to prop up, as a barrier against Russian ambition, was in danger of collapsing — nay, had collapsed. The Duke of Wellington de- clared that Turkey was not dying, but dead.^ He de- plored that the conference had ever departed from the protocol of the 16th of November, and inquired what new independent Power could be created to replace the Ottoman Empire as a barrier against Muscovite aggression. Lord Aberdeen suggested raising the 1 Report of Prince Esterhazy. Prokesch, Appendix, x. 44. 330 THE WAB OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE Porte up again, and propping it in place by means of a European guarantee ; and it was even seriously pro- posed to establish a Greek empire, with Constantinople as its capital/ Metternich watched with cynical satisfaction the development of the storm within the councils of the Alliance. He regarded the present crisis as the direct result of the weak and hesitating policy which England in particular had throughout pursued; and he now asked the British Cabinet sarcastically whether in future ' Great Britain intended to follow an English or a Liberal policy.' ^ Eor his own part he did not believe in the collapse of Turkey, w^hich had only been beaten because it believed itself to be so. IlTeither did he think that Russia had, for the present, any desire to destroy the Ottoman Power; and he was certain that she would never wish to see it replaced by a free and powerful Hellas. He now proposed to reopen negotiations on the basis of the maintenance of Turkey, and the creation of an independent Greek State. The whole question was once more plunged back into the diplomatic kettle. Within the Conference itself, which continued its sittings in London, there was a complete rearrangement of interests and parties. 1 Mendelssohn, ii. 168. 2 lUd. ii. 167. ANGLO -AUSTRIAN ENTENTE 331 On the 11th and 12th of October a cordial entente between the English and Austrian Cabinets had been arrived at; and the policy of the majority of the Powers was henceforward directed to counteracting the preponderance obtained by Russia. Wellington now recognised, what Metternich had insisted on so long, that Greece must be erected into an independent State; for, the Porte being caught inextricably in the toils of Russia, to create a vassal principality in the Levant would only be to open the way for the extension of Russian influence in the Med- iterranean. On the other hand, as long as there re- mained any hope of maintaining the Ottoman Empire, the Tory statesman would do nothing to raise up a Power which might conceivably become a new source of danger to its existence. If, therefore, Greece was to be independent, its limits must be so curtailed that it could under no circumstances prove a menace to Turkey.^ He did not see that a strong Hellas would have been the surest of all barriers against the advance of Russia, and the settlement, therefore, which of all others Russia would most have dreaded. The views of the English Cabinet were embodied in a new protocol, which was signed at London, on behalf of the Powers, on February 3, 1830. By the 1 Mendelssohn, ii, 174. 332 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE terms of this protocol Greece was to be erected into an independent State, and its frontiers were fixed to run from the mouth of the river Aspropotamos to Mount Artolina, and thence, over the comb of the range of Oxia and Oeta, to the mouth of the Sper- cheios. Euboea and the neighbouring islands were to be Greek, as also Skyros and the Cjclades. Prince Leopold of Coburg was proposed as the ruler of the newly-constituted State, but with the title, not of king, but of ^ sovereign prince.' ^ Except the guarantee of complete independence, so grudgingly conceded, this settlement had nothing to recommend it to the acceptance of the Hellenes. Apart from the confinement of the new State within limits which would have made effective government impossible, and w^hich rendered the gift of indepen- dence a hollow mockery, the lines of the frontier had been so drawn as to appear almost purposely offensive to Greek national feeling. Attica and Boeotia, where the population was mainly Albanian, were to be in- cluded in the new State, while xYcarnania and ^tolia, which were inhabited by a Greek-speaking race, were to remain Turkish! Strategically, too, the proposed frontier was impossible ; for it left in the hands of the Turks ^ the barrier which nature pointed out ' : that 1 Holland, p. 11. PROTOCOL OF FEBRUARY 3 333 rugged mountain range which, from the Gulf of Arta to that of Volo, runs ^ like a backbone behind Greece/ ^ On the 8th of April the protocol of the 3rd of February was officially notified to Count Capodistrias. At the same time he was directed by the Powers to proclaim an armistice, and to order the withdrawal of the Greek troops within the borders assigned by the protocol. Capodistrias veiled his own refusal by tak- ing refuge behind the forms of the Constitution, and answered that, though he would accept the protocol, he had, in fact, no right to do so imtil it had been laid before the National Assembly.^ The Senate, in the hands of which the Powers of the Assembly were vested, when it was itself not sitting, but which really represented only the views of the President, there- upon presented a memorandum refusing to accept the protocol. In face of the indignant opposition of the Greek nation (for in this matter Capodistrias un- doubtedly had the people on his side) it would have been a work of great difficulty to have enforced this latest settlement of the Hellenic question. As it was, it remained a dead letter, not only owing to the refusal of the Greeks to accept it, but because the serious oc- currences in other parts of Europe during the year dis- 1 Palmerston. Hansard, xxii. 562. 2 Mendelssohn, ii. 179. 334 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE tracted the attention of the Powers, for the time, from the affairs of Greece. Unpopular as the protocol of the 3rd of February- was, it contained, however, one provision which was highly acceptable to the Greeks, that, namely, which designated their future ruler. In the matter of th.e appointment of a prince, Capodistrias had been play- ing a dark and diplomatic game. There seems little doubt that he was himself ambitious of becoming the ruler of Hellas; and the ambition would have been perfectly justified. He seemed, however, quite in- capable of using open and straightforward means for the attainment of an object, when underhand and crooked methods could be employed. He had publicly proclaimed his anxiety for the speedy appointment of a king; in his private memoranda to the Powers and to the ambassadors he had frequently expressed the same opinion; and he had himself proposed the name of Prince Leopold to the conference of ambassadors at Poros. Yet now that the appointment seemed about to be realised, he did everything, short of open protest and resistance, to make it impossible. The Opposition had long been casting about for some effective means of embarrassing the Govern- ment; and the popular enthusiasm aroused by the nomination of their new prince appeared to them to ATTITUDE OF THE OPPOSITION 335 offer an opportunity wliicli was not to be neglected. The President and the Senate had, it was true, re- jected the protocol, but the President and Senate in no way represented the public opinion of Greece. The limitation of the frontiers was doubtless lament- able; yet their arrangement could not be regarded as final, and the question would not be compromised by accepting those benefits which the protocol un- doubtedly did confer. The presence of the new ruler was ardently longed for by the country, groaning under the despotic sway of Capodistrias. In short, it was decided by the members of the disaffected Op- position to counteract the action of the President and Senate by working up a popular demonstration of wel- come to Prince Leopold; and to this end addresses were circulated for signature in all parts of the coun- try, bidding welcome to the Prince, and asking him not to delay in coming to a nation which was eagerly ex- pecting him. The addresses were extensively signed; for Capodistrias's public utterances on the subject had led the people to believe that he himself was anxious for the arrival of the Prince. But Capodistrias was angered by what he regarded as a scarcely veiled at- tack upon himself, and alarmed at the number and importance of the signatories; for these included not only Mavrocordatos, Zaimis, Miaoulis, Petrobey, and 836 tup: war of greek independence numberless primates of the Morea and Hydra, but even Sissinis, tlie President, and several members of the Senate, who thus stultified their own previous action. He did not, indeed, dare to forbid the forwarding of addresses to the candidate approved by the Powers; but he issued orders that these were not to be sent di- rect, but to be submitted first to the inspection of the Government. Moreover, he let it be plainly known that those who signed would only do so at the risk of incurring his displeasure; and if they chanced to be Government ofiicials they were dismissed, on the plea that, in signing, they had been guilty of an act of in- subordination.^ While, by these means, Capodistrias tried to stem the tide of enthusiasm for Prince Leopold in Greece, he was also occupied in attemptinsj to shake the Prince's own resolution to accept the crown. To Baron Stockmar, Leopold's representative, who had come to Greece to make inquiries, he had already given a vivid picture of the magnitude of the task the Prince proposed to undertake. In the communica- tions he now had with Leopold himself, he cunningly combined earnest entreaties for his speedy arrival, Avith alarming accounts of the difficulties he would experience when he did arrive: of the utter exhaus- 1 Mendelssohn, ii. 212. RESIGNATION OF PRINCE LEOPOLD 337 tion of tKe country, the general corruption and in- subordination, and, above all, the absolute lack of money. He impressed upon him the advisability, nay, the necessity, for joining the Orthodox Church; he asked whether he would be prepared to unite with the people in arranging a Constitution, in accordance with the decrees of the Congress of Argos, and whether he would consent to be bound by the decisions of that Assembly. There has been some controversy as to what ulti- mately induced Leopold to resign the trust which had been solemnly conferred upon him, at his own solicita- tion, by the Powers of Europe. The death of George lY., and the shadowy prospect of a possible regency in England during the minority of Queen Victoria, can hardly be judged a sufficient motive, though they were considered so by many at the time.^ It is more probable that the intrigues and innuendoes of Capo- distrias were successful, and that Leopold was dis- gusted by the prospect which his acceptance of the Greek crown had opened before him. The policy of the President in suppressing the addresses of welcome had also borne fruit, and the Prince was more than doubtful as to the nature of the reception that awaited him on the part of -the Greek nation. On the 21st of 1 So Prokesch-Osten, ii. 417. 23 838 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE May, accordingly, he formally handed in his resigna- tion to the representatives of the Powers, stating as his reason the extreme unwillingness of the Greeks to accept the protocol of the 3rd of February. By the Hellenes the news of his resignation was received with a grief that was akin to despair; ^ in the diplomatic world it excited a ferment of anger and disgust, which found loud expression. Lord Aberdeen, in the House of Lords, made a statement which was construed into an attack on the Prince, and an arraignment of his motives in resigning the crown.^ Earl Grey, and other friends of Prince Leopold, took up the cudgels on his behalf; and, on the part of the Whigs, the affair was made the occasion for an elabo- rate attack on the whole Tory policy with regard to Greece. A letter was read from General Church con- demning utterly the frontier fixed by the protocol; and Lord Palmerston said that he could see no reason why Crete and the islands should not have been in- cluded, so as to make Greece a really powerful State. ^ The resignation of Prince Leopold, and the crisis which almost immediately followed in the affairs of Europe, put a stop to any strenuous endeavour to give 1 MeFidelssohn, ii. 211. 2 Hansard, xxiv. 990. 3 Prokesch, ii. 420. Cf. Hansard, xxii. 558. For the whole question of Leopold's resignation, see also Mendelssohn, IL 183-211. THE PORTE GRANTS REFORMS TO CRETE 339 effect to the protocol of the 3rd of February. It was at best but a weak attempt at compromise, and as such could never have satisfied anyone, or been more than a temporary settlement of the questions it affected to solve. The conception of an independent Greece, strong enough to form the nucleus of a State which should embrace all the Hellenes, and form an effective barrier against the aggressions of the Slav races in the East, would have been worthy of a strong cabinet. It was an act of political folly, born of vacillat- ing and divided counsels, to endeavour to create an independent Greece too weak to maintain its inde- pendence, and foredoomed to fall under whatever influences should chance to be paramount in the East. While the ultimate fate of the new State was thus still left undecided, the Porte had been quietly pro- ceeding with the settlements necessitated by the new conditions of its existence. The first of these dealt Avith the future of Crete. On June 6, 1830, a firman was issued granting several new rights to the Cretan rayahs/ In future the annual poll-tax was to be col- lected by their own bishops and captains, who were themselves to be exempt from it, as also were all mer- chants trading in their own ships. Free navigation of 1 Prokesch-Osten, ii. 423. 340 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPENDENCE the Black Sea and of the ^gean was conceded, as well as the right of the Cretans to sail under their own flag. There were to be in future no extraordinary burdens levied, and the inhabitants were to elect their own local officials. These, and certain minor reforms, seemed to assure the Cretans a fair measure of liberty. To Samos also was conceded the right of dealing direct with the Porte through its own elected representa- tives, instead of, as heretofore, through the Capitan Pasha. The prospect of these islands becoming contented under the Ottoman rule did not suit the purposes of the Greeks ; and emissaries were accordingly sent who succeeded in persuading the Cretans and Samians to refuse all concessions. Soon afterwards, the Ottoman Government, weary of the turbulent island, sold Crete to Mehemet Ali for 25,000,000 piastres. Upon this, Grabusa, which, since the destruction of the pirate stronghold, had been held by the allied fleets, was handed over to the Egyptians. Large numbers of fugitives were brought by the war-ships of the allies, and by Kanaris, to Greece, where they formed an ad- ditional drain on the slender resources of the Gov- ernment. Such, for the time being, was the fate of Crete. On the mainland everything remained as yet un- EVACUATION OF HELLAS BY THE TUKKS 341 decided. The revolution of July, with all the vast and pregnant issues which it raised, distracted the atten- tion of the European Cabinets from the affairs of Greece. The London Conference, indeed, still con- tinued to devote an occasional thought to the question, and on the 1st of July a protocol was issued confirm- ing that of the 3rd of February, and appointing com- missioners for the delimitation of the boundary. Very little, however, was done. The Turks demanded 300,- 000 Spanish dollars as compensation, before they would evacuate Attica and Boeotia; and the Greek Government had no money with which to meet the demand. Failing the payment of this sum, the Otto- mans, in the summer of 1830, systematically devas- tated the country, and it was reckoned that half the olive trees in Attica were destroyed. At last the 22nd of January was fixed on as the term for the evacua- tion to be carried out; but this proceeded, even then, very slowly. There were a thousand questions of com- pensation, and the like, to be settled; and the unhappy Mussulmans were naturally reluctant to leave their homes and their beloved country. A touching inci- dent is told, which may serve to illustrate this aspect of the war and its results. A Turk, who was starting on his sad journey, turned once more to gaze for the last time on the Piraeus. Overcome with emotion, he 342 THE WAR OF GREEK INDEPET^^DENCE prostrated himself, and kissed the ground from which he and his fathers had drawn their life. ^ Sweetest fatherland ! ' he cried, ^ I am leaving you, and shall never see you again ! ' ^ ^ rXvKVTarr] fxov naTpls, i%\ ■%// > .A. •* .N'- .^^ ^ » i ■v>^: ^^^ -^ x^^.. •v-. % 4 ^/- ' ^ H ^ .0 -I ^ .... ,^-^ •% ^= ,^